|
|
FAIRY TALES
THE BROTHERS GRIMM
PREPARER'S NOTE
The text is based on translations from the Grimms'
Kinder und Hausmarchen by
Edgar Taylor and
Marian Edwardes.
CONTENTS:
THE GOLDEN BIRD
HANS IN LUCK
JORINDA AND
JORINDEL
THE TRAVELLING
MUSICIANS
OLD SULTAN
THE STRAW, THE COAL,
AND THE BEAN
BRIAR ROSE
THE DOG AND THE
SPARROW
THE
TWELVE DANCING PRINCESSES
THE
FISHERMAN AND HIS WIFE
THE WILLOW-WREN AND THE
BEAR
THE FROG-PRINCE
CAT AND
MOUSE IN PARTNERSHIP
THE GOOSE-GIRL
THE ADVENTURES
OF CHANTICLEER AND PARTLET
1. HOW THEY WENT TO THE MOUNTAINS TO EAT NUTS
2. HOW CHANTICLEER AND PARTLET WENT TO VIST MR KORBES
RAPUNZEL
FUNDEVOGEL
THE VALIANT
LITTLE TAILOR
HANSEL AND
GRETEL
THE
MOUSE, THE BIRD, AND THE SAUSAGE
MOTHER HOLLE
LITTLE RED-CAP [LITTLE
RED RIDING HOOD]
THE ROBBER
BRIDEGROOM
TOM THUMB
RUMPELSTILTSKIN
CLEVER GRETEL
THE OLD
MAN AND HIS GRANDSON
THE LITTLE
PEASANT
FREDERICK AND
CATHERINE
SWEETHEART ROLAND
SNOWDROP
THE PINK
CLEVER ELSIE
THE MISER IN THE
BUSH
ASHPUTTEL
THE WHITE SNAKE
THE
WOLF AND THE SEVEN LITTLE KIDS
THE QUEEN BEE
THE ELVES
AND THE SHOEMAKER
THE JUNIPER-TREE
the juniper-tree.
THE TURNIP
CLEVER HANS
THE THREE LANGUAGES
THE FOX AND THE
CAT
THE FOUR
CLEVER BROTHERS
LILY AND THE
LION
THE FOX AND THE
HORSE
THE BLUE LIGHT
THE RAVEN
THE GOLDEN GOOSE
THE WATER OF LIFE
THE TWELVE HUNTSMEN
THE KING OF THE GOLDEN MOUNTAIN
DOCTOR KNOWALL
THE SEVEN RAVENS
THE WEDDING OF MRS FOX
FIRST STORY SECOND STORY
THE SALAD
THE STORY OF THE YOUTH WHO WENT FORTH TO LEARN
WHAT FEAR WAS
KING GRISLY-BEARD
IRON HANS
CAT-SKIN
SNOW-WHITE AND ROSE-RED
THE BROTHERS GRIMM FAIRY TALES
THE GOLDEN BIRD
A certain king had a beautiful garden, and in the
garden stood a tree which bore golden apples. These apples were always
counted, and about the time when they began to grow ripe it was found
that every night one of them was gone. The king became very angry at
this, and ordered the gardener to keep watch all night under the tree.
The gardener set his eldest son to watch; but about twelve o'clock he
fell asleep, and in the morning another of the apples was missing. Then
the second son was ordered to watch; and at midnight he too fell asleep,
and in the morning another apple was gone. Then the third son offered to
keep watch; but the gardener at first would not let him, for fear some
harm should come to him: however, at last he consented, and the young
man laid himself under the tree to watch. As the clock struck twelve he
heard a rustling noise in the air, and a bird came flying that was of
pure gold; and as it was snapping at one of the apples with its beak,
the gardener's son jumped up and shot an arrow at it. But the arrow did
the bird no harm; only it dropped a golden feather from its tail, and
then flew away. The golden feather was brought to the king in the
morning, and all the council was called together. Everyone agreed that
it was worth more than all the wealth of the kingdom: but the king said,
'One feather is of no use to me, I must have the whole bird.'
Then the gardener's eldest son set out and thought
to find the golden bird very easily; and when he had gone but a little
way, he came to a wood, and by the side of the wood he saw a fox
sitting; so he took his bow and made ready to shoot at it. Then the fox
said, 'Do not shoot me, for I will give you good counsel; I know what
your business is, and that you want to find the golden bird. You will
reach a village in the evening; and when you get there, you will see two
inns opposite to each other, one of which is very pleasant and beautiful
to look at: go not in there, but rest for the night in the other, though
it may appear to you to be very poor and mean.' But the son thought to
himself, 'What can such a beast as this know about the matter?' So he
shot his arrow at the fox; but he missed it, and it set up its tail
above its back and ran into the wood. Then he went his way, and in the
evening came to the village where the two inns were; and in one of these
were people singing, and dancing, and feasting; but the other looked
very dirty, and poor. 'I should be very silly,' said he, 'if I went to
that shabby house, and left this charming place'; so he went into the
smart house, and ate and drank at his ease, and forgot the bird, and his
country too.
Time passed on; and as the eldest son did not come
back, and no tidings were heard of him, the second son set out, and the
same thing happened to him. He met the fox, who gave him the good
advice: but when he came to the two inns, his eldest brother was
standing at the window where the merrymaking was, and called to him to
come in; and he could not withstand the temptation, but went in, and
forgot the golden bird and his country in the same manner.
Time passed on again, and the youngest son too
wished to set out into the wide world to seek for the golden bird; but
his father would not listen to it for a long while, for he was very fond
of his son, and was afraid that some ill luck might happen to him also,
and prevent his coming back. However, at last it was agreed he should
go, for he would not rest at home; and as he came to the wood, he met
the fox, and heard the same good counsel. But he was thankful to the
fox, and did not attempt his life as his brothers had done; so the fox
said, 'Sit upon my tail, and you will travel faster.' So he sat down,
and the fox began to run, and away they went over stock and stone so
quick that their hair whistled in the wind.
When they came to the village, the son followed
the fox's counsel, and without looking about him went to the shabby inn
and rested there all night at his ease. In the morning came the fox
again and met him as he was beginning his journey, and said, 'Go
straight forward, till you come to a castle, before which lie a whole
troop of soldiers fast asleep and snoring: take no notice of them, but
go into the castle and pass on and on till you come to a room, where the
golden bird sits in a wooden cage; close by it stands a beautiful golden
cage; but do not try to take the bird out of the shabby cage and put it
into the handsome one, otherwise you will repent it.' Then the fox
stretched out his tail again, and the young man sat himself down, and
away they went over stock and stone till their hair whistled in the
wind.
Before the castle gate all was as the fox had
said: so the son went in and found the chamber where the golden bird
hung in a wooden cage, and below stood the golden cage, and the three
golden apples that had been lost were lying close by it. Then thought he
to himself, 'It will be a very droll thing to bring away such a fine
bird in this shabby cage'; so he opened the door and took hold of it and
put it into the golden cage. But the bird set up such a loud scream that
all the soldiers awoke, and they took him prisoner and carried him
before the king. The next morning the court sat to judge him; and when
all was heard, it sentenced him to die, unless he should bring the king
the golden horse which could run as swiftly as the wind; and if he did
this, he was to have the golden bird given him for his own.
So he set out once more on his journey, sighing,
and in great despair, when on a sudden his friend the fox met him, and
said, 'You see now what has happened on account of your not listening to
my counsel. I will still, however, tell you how to find the golden
horse, if you will do as I bid you. You must go straight on till you
come to the castle where the horse stands in his stall: by his side will
lie the groom fast asleep and snoring: take away the horse quietly, but
be sure to put the old leathern saddle upon him, and not the golden one
that is close by it.' Then the son sat down on the fox's tail, and away
they went over stock and stone till their hair whistled in the wind.
All went right, and the groom lay snoring with his
hand upon the golden saddle. But when the son looked at the horse, he
thought it a great pity to put the leathern saddle upon it. 'I will give
him the good one,' said he; 'I am sure he deserves it.' As he took up
the golden saddle the groom awoke and cried out so loud, that all the
guards ran in and took him prisoner, and in the morning he was again
brought before the court to be judged, and was sentenced to die. But it
was agreed, that, if he could bring thither the beautiful princess, he
should live, and have the bird and the horse given him for his own.
Then he went his way very sorrowful; but the old
fox came and said, 'Why did not you listen to me? If you had, you would
have carried away both the bird and the horse; yet will I once more give
you counsel. Go straight on, and in the evening you will arrive at a
castle. At twelve o'clock at night the princess goes to the
bathing-house: go up to her and give her a kiss, and she will let you
lead her away; but take care you do not suffer her to go and take leave
of her father and mother.' Then the fox stretched out his tail, and so
away they went over stock and stone till their hair whistled again.
As they came to the castle, all was as the fox had
said, and at twelve o'clock the young man met the princes going to the
bath and gave her the kiss, and she agreed to run away with him, but
begged with many tears that he would let her take leave of her father.
At first he refused, but she wept still more and more, and fell at his
feet, till at last he consented; but the moment she came to her father's
house the guards awoke and he was taken prisoner again.
Then he was brought before the king, and the king
said, 'You shall never have my daughter unless in eight days you dig
away the hill that stops the view from my window.' Now this hill was so
big that the whole world could not take it away: and when he had worked
for seven days, and had done very little, the fox came and said. 'Lie
down and go to sleep; I will work for you.' And in the morning he awoke
and the hill was gone; so he went merrily to the king, and told him that
now that it was removed he must give him the princess.
Then the king was obliged to keep his word, and
away went the young man and the princess; and the fox came and said to
him, 'We will have all three, the princess, the horse, and the bird.'
'Ah!' said the young man, 'that would be a great thing, but how can you
contrive it?'
'If you will only listen,' said the fox, 'it can
be done. When you come to the king, and he asks for the beautiful
princess, you must say, "Here she is!" Then he will be very
joyful; and you will mount the golden horse that they are to give you,
and put out your hand to take leave of them; but shake hands with the
princess last. Then lift her quickly on to the horse behind you; clap
your spurs to his side, and gallop away as fast as you can.'
All went right: then the fox said, 'When you come
to the castle where the bird is, I will stay with the princess at the
door, and you will ride in and speak to the king; and when he sees that
it is the right horse, he will bring out the bird; but you must sit
still, and say that you want to look at it, to see whether it is the
true golden bird; and when you get it into your hand, ride away.'
This, too, happened as the fox said; they carried
off the bird, the princess mounted again, and they rode on to a great
wood. Then the fox came, and said, 'Pray kill me, and cut off my head
and my feet.' But the young man refused to do it: so the fox said, 'I
will at any rate give you good counsel: beware of two things; ransom no
one from the gallows, and sit down by the side of no river.' Then away
he went. 'Well,' thought the young man, 'it is no hard matter to keep
that advice.'
He rode on with the princess, till at last he came
to the village where he had left his two brothers. And there he heard a
great noise and uproar; and when he asked what was the matter, the
people said, 'Two men are going to be hanged.' As he came nearer, he saw
that the two men were his brothers, who had turned robbers; so he said,
'Cannot they in any way be saved?' But the people said 'No,' unless he
would bestow all his money upon the rascals and buy their liberty. Then
he did not stay to think about the matter, but paid what was asked, and
his brothers were given up, and went on with him towards their home.
And as they came to the wood where the fox first
met them, it was so cool and pleasant that the two brothers said, 'Let
us sit down by the side of the river, and rest a while, to eat and
drink.' So he said, 'Yes,' and forgot the fox's counsel, and sat down on
the side of the river; and while he suspected nothing, they came behind,
and threw him down the bank, and took the princess, the horse, and the
bird, and went home to the king their master, and said. 'All this have
we won by our labour.' Then there was great rejoicing made; but the
horse would not eat, the bird would not sing, and the princess wept.
The youngest son fell to the bottom of the river's
bed: luckily it was nearly dry, but his bones were almost broken, and
the bank was so steep that he could find no way to get out. Then the old
fox came once more, and scolded him for not following his advice;
otherwise no evil would have befallen him: 'Yet,' said he, 'I cannot
leave you here, so lay hold of my tail and hold fast.' Then he pulled
him out of the river, and said to him, as he got upon the bank, 'Your
brothers have set watch to kill you, if they find you in the kingdom.'
So he dressed himself as a poor man, and came secretly to the king's
court, and was scarcely within the doors when the horse began to eat,
and the bird to sing, and princess left off weeping. Then he went to the
king, and told him all his brothers' roguery; and they were seized and
punished, and he had the princess given to him again; and after the
king's death he was heir to his kingdom.
A long while after, he went to walk one day in the
wood, and the old fox met him, and besought him with tears in his eyes
to kill him, and cut off his head and feet. And at last he did so, and
in a moment the fox was changed into a man, and turned out to be the
brother of the princess, who had been lost a great many many years.
HANS IN LUCK
Some men are born to good luck: all they do or try
to do comes right-- all that falls to them is so much gain--all their
geese are swans--all their cards are trumps--toss them which way you
will, they will always, like poor puss, alight upon their legs, and only
move on so much the faster. The world may very likely not always think
of them as they think of themselves, but what care they for the world?
what can it know about the matter?
One of these lucky beings was neighbour Hans.
Seven long years he had worked hard for his master. At last he said,
'Master, my time is up; I must go home and see my poor mother once more:
so pray pay me my wages and let me go.' And the master said, 'You have
been a faithful and good servant, Hans, so your pay shall be handsome.'
Then he gave him a lump of silver as big as his head.
Hans took out his pocket-handkerchief, put the
piece of silver into it, threw it over his shoulder, and jogged off on
his road homewards. As he went lazily on, dragging one foot after
another, a man came in sight, trotting gaily along on a capital horse.
'Ah!' said Hans aloud, 'what a fine thing it is to ride on horseback!
There he sits as easy and happy as if he was at home, in the chair by
his fireside; he trips against no stones, saves shoe-leather, and gets
on he hardly knows how.' Hans did not speak so softly but the horseman
heard it all, and said, 'Well, friend, why do you go on foot then?'
'Ah!' said he, 'I have this load to carry: to be sure it is silver, but
it is so heavy that I can't hold up my head, and you must know it hurts
my shoulder sadly.' 'What do you say of making an exchange?' said the
horseman. 'I will give you my horse, and you shall give me the silver;
which will save you a great deal of trouble in carrying such a heavy
load about with you.' 'With all my heart,' said Hans: 'but as you are so
kind to me, I must tell you one thing--you will have a weary task to
draw that silver about with you.' However, the horseman got off, took
the silver, helped Hans up, gave him the bridle into one hand and the
whip into the other, and said, 'When you want to go very fast, smack
your lips loudly together, and cry "Jip!"'
Hans was delighted as he sat on the horse, drew
himself up, squared his elbows, turned out his toes, cracked his whip,
and rode merrily off, one minute whistling a merry tune, and another
singing,
'No care and no sorrow, A fig for the morrow!
We'll laugh and be merry, Sing neigh down derry!'
After a time he thought he should like to go a
little faster, so he smacked his lips and cried 'Jip!' Away went the
horse full gallop; and before Hans knew what he was about, he was thrown
off, and lay on his back by the road-side. His horse would have ran off,
if a shepherd who was coming by, driving a cow, had not stopped it. Hans
soon came to himself, and got upon his legs again, sadly vexed, and said
to the shepherd, 'This riding is no joke, when a man has the luck to get
upon a beast like this that stumbles and flings him off as if it would
break his neck. However, I'm off now once for all: I like your cow now a
great deal better than this smart beast that played me this trick, and
has spoiled my best coat, you see, in this puddle; which, by the by,
smells not very like a nosegay. One can walk along at one's leisure
behind that cow--keep good company, and have milk, butter, and cheese,
every day, into the bargain. What would I give to have such a prize!'
'Well,' said the shepherd, 'if you are so fond of her, I will change my
cow for your horse; I like to do good to my neighbours, even though I
lose by it myself.' 'Done!' said Hans, merrily. 'What a noble heart that
good man has!' thought he. Then the shepherd jumped upon the horse,
wished Hans and the cow good morning, and away he rode.
Hans brushed his coat, wiped his face and hands,
rested a while, and then drove off his cow quietly, and thought his
bargain a very lucky one. 'If I have only a piece of bread (and I
certainly shall always be able to get that), I can, whenever I like, eat
my butter and cheese with it; and when I am thirsty I can milk my cow
and drink the milk: and what can I wish for more?' When he came to an
inn, he halted, ate up all his bread, and gave away his last penny for a
glass of beer. When he had rested himself he set off again, driving his
cow towards his mother's village. But the heat grew greater as soon as
noon came on, till at last, as he found himself on a wide heath that
would take him more than an hour to cross, he began to be so hot and
parched that his tongue clave to the roof of his mouth. 'I can find a
cure for this,' thought he; 'now I will milk my cow and quench my
thirst': so he tied her to the stump of a tree, and held his leathern
cap to milk into; but not a drop was to be had. Who would have thought
that this cow, which was to bring him milk and butter and cheese, was
all that time utterly dry? Hans had not thought of looking to that.
While he was trying his luck in milking, and
managing the matter very clumsily, the uneasy beast began to think him
very troublesome; and at last gave him such a kick on the head as
knocked him down; and there he lay a long while senseless. Luckily a
butcher soon came by, driving a pig in a wheelbarrow. 'What is the
matter with you, my man?' said the butcher, as he helped him up. Hans
told him what had happened, how he was dry, and wanted to milk his cow,
but found the cow was dry too. Then the butcher gave him a flask of ale,
saying, 'There, drink and refresh yourself; your cow will give you no
milk: don't you see she is an old beast, good for nothing but the
slaughter-house?' 'Alas, alas!' said Hans, 'who would have thought it?
What a shame to take my horse, and give me only a dry cow! If I kill
her, what will she be good for? I hate cow-beef; it is not tender enough
for me. If it were a pig now --like that fat gentleman you are driving
along at his ease--one could do something with it; it would at any rate
make sausages.' 'Well,' said the butcher, 'I don't like to say no, when
one is asked to do a kind, neighbourly thing. To please you I will
change, and give you my fine fat pig for the cow.' 'Heaven reward you
for your kindness and self-denial!' said Hans, as he gave the butcher
the cow; and taking the pig off the wheel-barrow, drove it away, holding
it by the string that was tied to its leg.
So on he jogged, and all seemed now to go right
with him: he had met with some misfortunes, to be sure; but he was now
well repaid for all. How could it be otherwise with such a travelling
companion as he had at last got?
The next man he met was a countryman carrying a
fine white goose. The countryman stopped to ask what was o'clock; this
led to further chat; and Hans told him all his luck, how he had so many
good bargains, and how all the world went gay and smiling with him. The
countryman than began to tell his tale, and said he was going to take
the goose to a christening. 'Feel,' said he, 'how heavy it is, and yet
it is only eight weeks old. Whoever roasts and eats it will find plenty
of fat upon it, it has lived so well!' 'You're right,' said Hans, as he
weighed it in his hand; 'but if you talk of fat, my pig is no trifle.'
Meantime the countryman began to look grave, and shook his head. 'Hark
ye!' said he, 'my worthy friend, you seem a good sort of fellow, so I
can't help doing you a kind turn. Your pig may get you into a scrape. In
the village I just came from, the squire has had a pig stolen out of his
sty. I was dreadfully afraid when I saw you that you had got the
squire's pig. If you have, and they catch you, it will be a bad job for
you. The least they will do will be to throw you into the horse-pond.
Can you swim?'
Poor Hans was sadly frightened. 'Good man,' cried
he, 'pray get me out of this scrape. I know nothing of where the pig was
either bred or born; but he may have been the squire's for aught I can
tell: you know this country better than I do, take my pig and give me
the goose.' 'I ought to have something into the bargain,' said the
countryman; 'give a fat goose for a pig, indeed! 'Tis not everyone would
do so much for you as that. However, I will not be hard upon you, as you
are in trouble.' Then he took the string in his hand, and drove off the
pig by a side path; while Hans went on the way homewards free from care.
'After all,' thought he, 'that chap is pretty well taken in. I don't
care whose pig it is, but wherever it came from it has been a very good
friend to me. I have much the best of the bargain. First there will be a
capital roast; then the fat will find me in goose-grease for six months;
and then there are all the beautiful white feathers. I will put them
into my pillow, and then I am sure I shall sleep soundly without
rocking. How happy my mother will be! Talk of a pig, indeed! Give me a
fine fat goose.'
As he came to the next village, he saw a
scissor-grinder with his wheel, working and singing,
'O'er hill and o'er dale So happy I roam, Work
light and live well, All the world is my home; Then who so blythe, so
merry as I?'
Hans stood looking on for a while, and at last
said, 'You must be well off, master grinder! you seem so happy at your
work.' 'Yes,' said the other, 'mine is a golden trade; a good grinder
never puts his hand into his pocket without finding money in it--but
where did you get that beautiful goose?' 'I did not buy it, I gave a pig
for it.' 'And where did you get the pig?' 'I gave a cow for it.' 'And
the cow?' 'I gave a horse for it.' 'And the horse?' 'I gave a lump of
silver as big as my head for it.' 'And the silver?' 'Oh! I worked hard
for that seven long years.' 'You have thriven well in the world
hitherto,' said the grinder, 'now if you could find money in your pocket
whenever you put your hand in it, your fortune would be made.' 'Very
true: but how is that to be managed?' 'How? Why, you must turn grinder
like myself,' said the other; 'you only want a grindstone; the rest will
come of itself. Here is one that is but little the worse for wear: I
would not ask more than the value of your goose for it--will you buy?'
'How can you ask?' said Hans; 'I should be the happiest man in the
world, if I could have money whenever I put my hand in my pocket: what
could I want more? there's the goose.' 'Now,' said the grinder, as he
gave him a common rough stone that lay by his side, 'this is a most
capital stone; do but work it well enough, and you can make an old nail
cut with it.'
Hans took the stone, and went his way with a light
heart: his eyes sparkled for joy, and he said to himself, 'Surely I must
have been born in a lucky hour; everything I could want or wish for
comes of itself. People are so kind; they seem really to think I do them
a favour in letting them make me rich, and giving me good bargains.'
Meantime he began to be tired, and hungry too, for
he had given away his last penny in his joy at getting the cow.
At last he could go no farther, for the stone
tired him sadly: and he dragged himself to the side of a river, that he
might take a drink of water, and rest a while. So he laid the stone
carefully by his side on the bank: but, as he stooped down to drink, he
forgot it, pushed it a little, and down it rolled, plump into the
stream.
For a while he watched it sinking in the deep
clear water; then sprang up and danced for joy, and again fell upon his
knees and thanked Heaven, with tears in his eyes, for its kindness in
taking away his only plague, the ugly heavy stone.
'How happy am I!' cried he; 'nobody was ever so
lucky as I.' Then up he got with a light heart, free from all his
troubles, and walked on till he reached his mother's house, and told her
how very easy the road to good luck was.
JORINDA AND JORINDEL
There was once an old castle, that stood in the
middle of a deep gloomy wood, and in the castle lived an old fairy. Now
this fairy could take any shape she pleased. All the day long she flew
about in the form of an owl, or crept about the country like a cat; but
at night she always became an old woman again. When any young man came
within a hundred paces of her castle, he became quite fixed, and could
not move a step till she came and set him free; which she would not do
till he had given her his word never to come there again: but when any
pretty maiden came within that space she was changed into a bird, and
the fairy put her into a cage, and hung her up in a chamber in the
castle. There were seven hundred of these cages hanging in the castle,
and all with beautiful birds in them.
Now there was once a maiden whose name was Jorinda.
She was prettier than all the pretty girls that ever were seen before,
and a shepherd lad, whose name was Jorindel, was very fond of her, and
they were soon to be married. One day they went to walk in the wood,
that they might be alone; and Jorindel said, 'We must take care that we
don't go too near to the fairy's castle.' It was a beautiful evening;
the last rays of the setting sun shone bright through the long stems of
the trees upon the green underwood beneath, and the turtle-doves sang
from the tall birches.
Jorinda sat down to gaze upon the sun; Jorindel
sat by her side; and both felt sad, they knew not why; but it seemed as
if they were to be parted from one another for ever. They had wandered a
long way; and when they looked to see which way they should go home,
they found themselves at a loss to know what path to take.
The sun was setting fast, and already half of its
circle had sunk behind the hill: Jorindel on a sudden looked behind him,
and saw through the bushes that they had, without knowing it, sat down
close under the old walls of the castle. Then he shrank for fear, turned
pale, and trembled. Jorinda was just singing,
'The ring-dove sang from the willow spray,
Well-a-day! Well-a-day! He mourn'd for the fate of his darling mate,
Well-a-day!'
when her song stopped suddenly. Jorindel turned to
see the reason, and beheld his Jorinda changed into a nightingale, so
that her song ended with a mournful /jug, jug/. An owl with fiery eyes
flew three times round them, and three times screamed:
'Tu whu! Tu whu! Tu whu!'
Jorindel could not move; he stood fixed as a
stone, and could neither weep, nor speak, nor stir hand or foot. And now
the sun went quite down; the gloomy night came; the owl flew into a
bush; and a moment after the old fairy came forth pale and meagre, with
staring eyes, and a nose and chin that almost met one another.
She mumbled something to herself, seized the
nightingale, and went away with it in her hand. Poor Jorindel saw the
nightingale was gone-- but what could he do? He could not speak, he
could not move from the spot where he stood. At last the fairy came back
and sang with a hoarse voice:
'Till the prisoner is fast, And her doom is cast,
There stay! Oh, stay! When the charm is around her, And the spell has
bound her, Hie away! away!'
On a sudden Jorindel found himself free. Then he
fell on his knees before the fairy, and prayed her to give him back his
dear Jorinda: but she laughed at him, and said he should never see her
again; then she went her way.
He prayed, he wept, he sorrowed, but all in vain.
'Alas!' he said, 'what will become of me?' He could not go back to his
own home, so he went to a strange village, and employed himself in
keeping sheep. Many a time did he walk round and round as near to the
hated castle as he dared go, but all in vain; he heard or saw nothing of
Jorinda.
At last he dreamt one night that he found a
beautiful purple flower, and that in the middle of it lay a costly
pearl; and he dreamt that he plucked the flower, and went with it in his
hand into the castle, and that everything he touched with it was
disenchanted, and that there he found his Jorinda again.
In the morning when he awoke, he began to search
over hill and dale for this pretty flower; and eight long days he sought
for it in vain: but on the ninth day, early in the morning, he found the
beautiful purple flower; and in the middle of it was a large dewdrop, as
big as a costly pearl. Then he plucked the flower, and set out and
travelled day and night, till he came again to the castle.
He walked nearer than a hundred paces to it, and
yet he did not become fixed as before, but found that he could go quite
close up to the door. Jorindel was very glad indeed to see this. Then he
touched the door with the flower, and it sprang open; so that he went in
through the court, and listened when he heard so many birds singing. At
last he came to the chamber where the fairy sat, with the seven hundred
birds singing in the seven hundred cages. When she saw Jorindel she was
very angry, and screamed with rage; but she could not come within two
yards of him, for the flower he held in his hand was his safeguard. He
looked around at the birds, but alas! there were many, many
nightingales, and how then should he find out which was his Jorinda?
While he was thinking what to do, he saw the fairy had taken down one of
the cages, and was making the best of her way off through the door. He
ran or flew after her, touched the cage with the flower, and Jorinda
stood before him, and threw her arms round his neck looking as beautiful
as ever, as beautiful as when they walked together in the wood.
Then he touched all the other birds with the
flower, so that they all took their old forms again; and he took Jorinda
home, where they were married, and lived happily together many years:
and so did a good many other lads, whose maidens had been forced to sing
in the old fairy's cages by themselves, much longer than they liked.
THE TRAVELLING MUSICIANS
An honest farmer had once an ass that had been a
faithful servant to him a great many years, but was now growing old and
every day more and more unfit for work. His master therefore was tired
of keeping him and began to think of putting an end to him; but the ass,
who saw that some mischief was in the wind, took himself slyly off, and
began his journey towards the great city, 'For there,' thought he, 'I
may turn musician.'
After he had travelled a little way, he spied a
dog lying by the roadside and panting as if he were tired. 'What makes
you pant so, my friend?' said the ass. 'Alas!' said the dog, 'my master
was going to knock me on the head, because I am old and weak, and can no
longer make myself useful to him in hunting; so I ran away; but what can
I do to earn my livelihood?' 'Hark ye!' said the ass, 'I am going to the
great city to turn musician: suppose you go with me, and try what you
can do in the same way?' The dog said he was willing, and they jogged on
together.
They had not gone far before they saw a cat
sitting in the middle of the road and making a most rueful face. 'Pray,
my good lady,' said the ass, 'what's the matter with you? You look quite
out of spirits!' 'Ah, me!' said the cat, 'how can one be in good spirits
when one's life is in danger? Because I am beginning to grow old, and
had rather lie at my ease by the fire than run about the house after the
mice, my mistress laid hold of me, and was going to drown me; and though
I have been lucky enough to get away from her, I do not know what I am
to live upon.' 'Oh,' said the ass, 'by all means go with us to the great
city; you are a good night singer, and may make your fortune as a
musician.' The cat was pleased with the thought, and joined the party.
Soon afterwards, as they were passing by a
farmyard, they saw a cock perched upon a gate, and screaming out with
all his might and main. 'Bravo!' said the ass; 'upon my word, you make a
famous noise; pray what is all this about?' 'Why,' said the cock, 'I was
just now saying that we should have fine weather for our washing-day,
and yet my mistress and the cook don't thank me for my pains, but
threaten to cut off my head tomorrow, and make broth of me for the
guests that are coming on Sunday!' 'Heaven forbid!' said the ass, 'come
with us Master Chanticleer; it will be better, at any rate, than staying
here to have your head cut off! Besides, who knows? If we care to sing
in tune, we may get up some kind of a concert; so come along with us.'
'With all my heart,' said the cock: so they all four went on jollily
together.
They could not, however, reach the great city the
first day; so when night came on, they went into a wood to sleep. The
ass and the dog laid themselves down under a great tree, and the cat
climbed up into the branches; while the cock, thinking that the higher
he sat the safer he should be, flew up to the very top of the tree, and
then, according to his custom, before he went to sleep, looked out on
all sides of him to see that everything was well. In doing this, he saw
afar off something bright and shining and calling to his companions
said, 'There must be a house no great way off, for I see a light.' 'If
that be the case,' said the ass, 'we had better change our quarters, for
our lodging is not the best in the world!' 'Besides,' added the dog, 'I
should not be the worse for a bone or two, or a bit of meat.' So they
walked off together towards the spot where Chanticleer had seen the
light, and as they drew near it became larger and brighter, till they at
last came close to a house in which a gang of robbers lived.
The ass, being the tallest of the company, marched
up to the window and peeped in. 'Well, Donkey,' said Chanticleer, 'what
do you see?' 'What do I see?' replied the ass. 'Why, I see a table
spread with all kinds of good things, and robbers sitting round it
making merry.' 'That would be a noble lodging for us,' said the cock.
'Yes,' said the ass, 'if we could only get in'; so they consulted
together how they should contrive to get the robbers out; and at last
they hit upon a plan. The ass placed himself upright on his hind legs,
with his forefeet resting against the window; the dog got upon his back;
the cat scrambled up to the dog's shoulders, and the cock flew up and
sat upon the cat's head. When all was ready a signal was given, and they
began their music. The ass brayed, the dog barked, the cat mewed, and
the cock screamed; and then they all broke through the window at once,
and came tumbling into the room, amongst the broken glass, with a most
hideous clatter! The robbers, who had been not a little frightened by
the opening concert, had now no doubt that some frightful hobgoblin had
broken in upon them, and scampered away as fast as they could.
The coast once clear, our travellers soon sat down
and dispatched what the robbers had left, with as much eagerness as if
they had not expected to eat again for a month. As soon as they had
satisfied themselves, they put out the lights, and each once more sought
out a resting-place to his own liking. The donkey laid himself down upon
a heap of straw in the yard, the dog stretched himself upon a mat behind
the door, the cat rolled herself up on the hearth before the warm ashes,
and the cock perched upon a beam on the top of the house; and, as they
were all rather tired with their journey, they soon fell asleep.
But about midnight, when the robbers saw from afar
that the lights were out and that all seemed quiet, they began to think
that they had been in too great a hurry to run away; and one of them,
who was bolder than the rest, went to see what was going on. Finding
everything still, he marched into the kitchen, and groped about till he
found a match in order to light a candle; and then, espying the
glittering fiery eyes of the cat, he mistook them for live coals, and
held the match to them to light it. But the cat, not understanding this
joke, sprang at his face, and spat, and scratched at him. This
frightened him dreadfully, and away he ran to the back door; but there
the dog jumped up and bit him in the leg; and as he was crossing over
the yard the ass kicked him; and the cock, who had been awakened by the
noise, crowed with all his might. At this the robber ran back as fast as
he could to his comrades, and told the captain how a horrid witch had
got into the house, and had spat at him and scratched his face with her
long bony fingers; how a man with a knife in his hand had hidden himself
behind the door, and stabbed him in the leg; how a black monster stood
in the yard and struck him with a club, and how the devil had sat upon
the top of the house and cried out, 'Throw the rascal up here!' After
this the robbers never dared to go back to the house; but the musicians
were so pleased with their quarters that they took up their abode there;
and there they are, I dare say, at this very day.
OLD SULTAN
A shepherd had a faithful dog, called Sultan, who
was grown very old, and had lost all his teeth. And one day when the
shepherd and his wife were standing together before the house the
shepherd said, 'I will shoot old Sultan tomorrow morning, for he is of
no use now.' But his wife said, 'Pray let the poor faithful creature
live; he has served us well a great many years, and we ought to give him
a livelihood for the rest of his days.' 'But what can we do with him?'
said the shepherd, 'he has not a tooth in his head, and the thieves
don't care for him at all; to be sure he has served us, but then he did
it to earn his livelihood; tomorrow shall be his last day, depend upon
it.'
Poor Sultan, who was lying close by them, heard
all that the shepherd and his wife said to one another, and was very
much frightened to think tomorrow would be his last day; so in the
evening he went to his good friend the wolf, who lived in the wood, and
told him all his sorrows, and how his master meant to kill him in the
morning. 'Make yourself easy,' said the wolf, 'I will give you some good
advice. Your master, you know, goes out every morning very early with
his wife into the field; and they take their little child with them, and
lay it down behind the hedge in the shade while they are at work. Now do
you lie down close by the child, and pretend to be watching it, and I
will come out of the wood and run away with it; you must run after me as
fast as you can, and I will let it drop; then you may carry it back, and
they will think you have saved their child, and will be so thankful to
you that they will take care of you as long as you live.' The dog liked
this plan very well; and accordingly so it was managed. The wolf ran
with the child a little way; the shepherd and his wife screamed out; but
Sultan soon overtook him, and carried the poor little thing back to his
master and mistress. Then the shepherd patted him on the head, and said,
'Old Sultan has saved our child from the wolf, and therefore he shall
live and be well taken care of, and have plenty to eat. Wife, go home,
and give him a good dinner, and let him have my old cushion to sleep on
as long as he lives.' So from this time forward Sultan had all that he
could wish for.
Soon afterwards the wolf came and wished him joy,
and said, 'Now, my good fellow, you must tell no tales, but turn your
head the other way when I want to taste one of the old shepherd's fine
fat sheep.' 'No,' said the Sultan; 'I will be true to my master.'
However, the wolf thought he was in joke, and came one night to get a
dainty morsel. But Sultan had told his master what the wolf meant to do;
so he laid wait for him behind the barn door, and when the wolf was busy
looking out for a good fat sheep, he had a stout cudgel laid about his
back, that combed his locks for him finely.
Then the wolf was very angry, and called Sultan
'an old rogue,' and swore he would have his revenge. So the next morning
the wolf sent the boar to challenge Sultan to come into the wood to
fight the matter. Now Sultan had nobody he could ask to be his second
but the shepherd's old three-legged cat; so he took her with him, and as
the poor thing limped along with some trouble, she stuck up her tail
straight in the air.
The wolf and the wild boar were first on the
ground; and when they espied their enemies coming, and saw the cat's
long tail standing straight in the air, they thought she was carrying a
sword for Sultan to fight with; and every time she limped, they thought
she was picking up a stone to throw at them; so they said they should
not like this way of fighting, and the boar lay down behind a bush, and
the wolf jumped up into a tree. Sultan and the cat soon came up, and
looked about and wondered that no one was there. The boar, however, had
not quite hidden himself, for his ears stuck out of the bush; and when
he shook one of them a little, the cat, seeing something move, and
thinking it was a mouse, sprang upon it, and bit and scratched it, so
that the boar jumped up and grunted, and ran away, roaring out, 'Look up
in the tree, there sits the one who is to blame.' So they looked up, and
espied the wolf sitting amongst the branches; and they called him a
cowardly rascal, and would not suffer him to come down till he was
heartily ashamed of himself, and had promised to be good friends again
with old Sultan.
THE STRAW, THE COAL, AND THE BEAN
In a village dwelt a poor old woman, who had
gathered together a dish of beans and wanted to cook them. So she made a
fire on her hearth, and that it might burn the quicker, she lighted it
with a handful of straw. When she was emptying the beans into the pan,
one dropped without her observing it, and lay on the ground beside a
straw, and soon afterwards a burning coal from the fire leapt down to
the two. Then the straw began and said: 'Dear friends, from whence do
you come here?' The coal replied: 'I fortunately sprang out of the fire,
and if I had not escaped by sheer force, my death would have been
certain,--I should have been burnt to ashes.' The bean said: 'I too have
escaped with a whole skin, but if the old woman had got me into the pan,
I should have been made into broth without any mercy, like my comrades.'
'And would a better fate have fallen to my lot?' said the straw. 'The
old woman has destroyed all my brethren in fire and smoke; she seized
sixty of them at once, and took their lives. I luckily slipped through
her fingers.'
'But what are we to do now?' said the coal.
'I think,' answered the bean, 'that as we have so
fortunately escaped death, we should keep together like good companions,
and lest a new mischance should overtake us here, we should go away
together, and repair to a foreign country.'
The proposition pleased the two others, and they
set out on their way together. Soon, however, they came to a little
brook, and as there was no bridge or foot-plank, they did not know how
they were to get over it. The straw hit on a good idea, and said: 'I
will lay myself straight across, and then you can walk over on me as on
a bridge.' The straw therefore stretched itself from one bank to the
other, and the coal, who was of an impetuous disposition, tripped quite
boldly on to the newly-built bridge. But when she had reached the
middle, and heard the water rushing beneath her, she was after all,
afraid, and stood still, and ventured no farther. The straw, however,
began to burn, broke in two pieces, and fell into the stream. The coal
slipped after her, hissed when she got into the water, and breathed her
last. The bean, who had prudently stayed behind on the shore, could not
but laugh at the event, was unable to stop, and laughed so heartily that
she burst. It would have been all over with her, likewise, if, by good
fortune, a tailor who was travelling in search of work, had not sat down
to rest by the brook. As he had a compassionate heart he pulled out his
needle and thread, and sewed her together. The bean thanked him most
prettily, but as the tailor used black thread, all beans since then have
a black seam.
BRIAR ROSE
A king and queen once upon a time reigned in a
country a great way off, where there were in those days fairies. Now
this king and queen had plenty of money, and plenty of fine clothes to
wear, and plenty of good things to eat and drink, and a coach to ride
out in every day: but though they had been married many years they had
no children, and this grieved them very much indeed. But one day as the
queen was walking by the side of the river, at the bottom of the garden,
she saw a poor little fish, that had thrown itself out of the water, and
lay gasping and nearly dead on the bank. Then the queen took pity on the
little fish, and threw it back again into the river; and before it swam
away it lifted its head out of the water and said, 'I know what your
wish is, and it shall be fulfilled, in return for your kindness to
me--you will soon have a daughter.' What the little fish had foretold
soon came to pass; and the queen had a little girl, so very beautiful
that the king could not cease looking on it for joy, and said he would
hold a great feast and make merry, and show the child to all the land.
So he asked his kinsmen, and nobles, and friends, and neighbours. But
the queen said, 'I will have the fairies also, that they might be kind
and good to our little daughter.' Now there were thirteen fairies in the
kingdom; but as the king and queen had only twelve golden dishes for
them to eat out of, they were forced to leave one of the fairies without
asking her. So twelve fairies came, each with a high red cap on her
head, and red shoes with high heels on her feet, and a long white wand
in her hand: and after the feast was over they gathered round in a ring
and gave all their best gifts to the little princess. One gave her
goodness, another beauty, another riches, and so on till she had all
that was good in the world.
Just as eleven of them had done blessing her, a
great noise was heard in the courtyard, and word was brought that the
thirteenth fairy was come, with a black cap on her head, and black shoes
on her feet, and a broomstick in her hand: and presently up she came
into the dining- hall. Now, as she had not been asked to the feast she
was very angry, and scolded the king and queen very much, and set to
work to take her revenge. So she cried out, 'The king's daughter shall,
in her fifteenth year, be wounded by a spindle, and fall down dead.'
Then the twelfth of the friendly fairies, who had not yet given her
gift, came forward, and said that the evil wish must be fulfilled, but
that she could soften its mischief; so her gift was, that the king's
daughter, when the spindle wounded her, should not really die, but
should only fall asleep for a hundred years.
However, the king hoped still to save his dear
child altogether from the threatened evil; so he ordered that all the
spindles in the kingdom should be bought up and burnt. But all the gifts
of the first eleven fairies were in the meantime fulfilled; for the
princess was so beautiful, and well behaved, and good, and wise, that
everyone who knew her loved her.
It happened that, on the very day she was fifteen
years old, the king and queen were not at home, and she was left alone
in the palace. So she roved about by herself, and looked at all the
rooms and chambers, till at last she came to an old tower, to which
there was a narrow staircase ending with a little door. In the door
there was a golden key, and when she turned it the door sprang open, and
there sat an old lady spinning away very busily. 'Why, how now, good
mother,' said the princess; 'what are you doing there?' 'Spinning,' said
the old lady, and nodded her head, humming a tune, while buzz! went the
wheel. 'How prettily that little thing turns round!' said the princess,
and took the spindle and began to try and spin. But scarcely had she
touched it, before the fairy's prophecy was fulfilled; the spindle
wounded her, and she fell down lifeless on the ground.
However, she was not dead, but had only fallen
into a deep sleep; and the king and the queen, who had just come home,
and all their court, fell asleep too; and the horses slept in the
stables, and the dogs in the court, the pigeons on the house-top, and
the very flies slept upon the walls. Even the fire on the hearth left
off blazing, and went to sleep; the jack stopped, and the spit that was
turning about with a goose upon it for the king's dinner stood still;
and the cook, who was at that moment pulling the kitchen-boy by the hair
to give him a box on the ear for something he had done amiss, let him
go, and both fell asleep; the butler, who was slyly tasting the ale,
fell asleep with the jug at his lips: and thus everything stood still,
and slept soundly.
A large hedge of thorns soon grew round the
palace, and every year it became higher and thicker; till at last the
old palace was surrounded and hidden, so that not even the roof or the
chimneys could be seen. But there went a report through all the land of
the beautiful sleeping Briar Rose (for so the king's daughter was
called): so that, from time to time, several kings' sons came, and tried
to break through the thicket into the palace. This, however, none of
them could ever do; for the thorns and bushes laid hold of them, as it
were with hands; and there they stuck fast, and died wretchedly.
After many, many years there came a king's son
into that land: and an old man told him the story of the thicket of
thorns; and how a beautiful palace stood behind it, and how a wonderful
princess, called Briar Rose, lay in it asleep, with all her court. He
told, too, how he had heard from his grandfather that many, many princes
had come, and had tried to break through the thicket, but that they had
all stuck fast in it, and died. Then the young prince said, 'All this
shall not frighten me; I will go and see this Briar Rose.' The old man
tried to hinder him, but he was bent upon going.
Now that very day the hundred years were ended;
and as the prince came to the thicket he saw nothing but beautiful
flowering shrubs, through which he went with ease, and they shut in
after him as thick as ever. Then he came at last to the palace, and
there in the court lay the dogs asleep; and the horses were standing in
the stables; and on the roof sat the pigeons fast asleep, with their
heads under their wings. And when he came into the palace, the flies
were sleeping on the walls; the spit was standing still; the butler had
the jug of ale at his lips, going to drink a draught; the maid sat with
a fowl in her lap ready to be plucked; and the cook in the kitchen was
still holding up her hand, as if she was going to beat the boy.
Then he went on still farther, and all was so
still that he could hear every breath he drew; till at last he came to
the old tower, and opened the door of the little room in which Briar
Rose was; and there she lay, fast asleep on a couch by the window. She
looked so beautiful that he could not take his eyes off her, so he
stooped down and gave her a kiss. But the moment he kissed her she
opened her eyes and awoke, and smiled upon him; and they went out
together; and soon the king and queen also awoke, and all the court, and
gazed on each other with great wonder. And the horses shook themselves,
and the dogs jumped up and barked; the pigeons took their heads from
under their wings, and looked about and flew into the fields; the flies
on the walls buzzed again; the fire in the kitchen blazed up; round went
the jack, and round went the spit, with the goose for the king's dinner
upon it; the butler finished his draught of ale; the maid went on
plucking the fowl; and the cook gave the boy the box on his ear.
And then the prince and Briar Rose were married,
and the wedding feast was given; and they lived happily together all
their lives long.
THE DOG AND THE SPARROW
A shepherd's dog had a master who took no care of
him, but often let him suffer the greatest hunger. At last he could bear
it no longer; so he took to his heels, and off he ran in a very sad and
sorrowful mood. On the road he met a sparrow that said to him, 'Why are
you so sad, my friend?' 'Because,' said the dog, 'I am very very hungry,
and have nothing to eat.' 'If that be all,' answered the sparrow, 'come
with me into the next town, and I will soon find you plenty of food.' So
on they went together into the town: and as they passed by a butcher's
shop, the sparrow said to the dog, 'Stand there a little while till I
peck you down a piece of meat.' So the sparrow perched upon the shelf:
and having first looked carefully about her to see if anyone was
watching her, she pecked and scratched at a steak that lay upon the edge
of the shelf, till at last down it fell. Then the dog snapped it up, and
scrambled away with it into a corner, where he soon ate it all up.
'Well,' said the sparrow, 'you shall have some more if you will; so come
with me to the next shop, and I will peck you down another steak.' When
the dog had eaten this too, the sparrow said to him, 'Well, my good
friend, have you had enough now?' 'I have had plenty of meat,' answered
he, 'but I should like to have a piece of bread to eat after it.' 'Come
with me then,' said the sparrow, 'and you shall soon have that too.' So
she took him to a baker's shop, and pecked at two rolls that lay in the
window, till they fell down: and as the dog still wished for more, she
took him to another shop and pecked down some more for him. When that
was eaten, the sparrow asked him whether he had had enough now. 'Yes,'
said he; 'and now let us take a walk a little way out of the town.' So
they both went out upon the high road; but as the weather was warm, they
had not gone far before the dog said, 'I am very much tired--I should
like to take a nap.' 'Very well,' answered the sparrow, 'do so, and in
the meantime I will perch upon that bush.' So the dog stretched himself
out on the road, and fell fast asleep. Whilst he slept, there came by a
carter with a cart drawn by three horses, and loaded with two casks of
wine. The sparrow, seeing that the carter did not turn out of the way,
but would go on in the track in which the dog lay, so as to drive over
him, called out, 'Stop! stop! Mr Carter, or it shall be the worse for
you.' But the carter, grumbling to himself, 'You make it the worse for
me, indeed! what can you do?' cracked his whip, and drove his cart over
the poor dog, so that the wheels crushed him to death. 'There,' cried
the sparrow, 'thou cruel villain, thou hast killed my friend the dog.
Now mind what I say. This deed of thine shall cost thee all thou art
worth.' 'Do your worst, and welcome,' said the brute, 'what harm can you
do me?' and passed on. But the sparrow crept under the tilt of the cart,
and pecked at the bung of one of the casks till she loosened it; and
than all the wine ran out, without the carter seeing it. At last he
looked round, and saw that the cart was dripping, and the cask quite
empty. 'What an unlucky wretch I am!' cried he. 'Not wretch enough yet!'
said the sparrow, as she alighted upon the head of one of the horses,
and pecked at him till he reared up and kicked. When the carter saw
this, he drew out his hatchet and aimed a blow at the sparrow, meaning
to kill her; but she flew away, and the blow fell upon the poor horse's
head with such force, that he fell down dead. 'Unlucky wretch that I
am!' cried he. 'Not wretch enough yet!' said the sparrow. And as the
carter went on with the other two horses, she again crept under the tilt
of the cart, and pecked out the bung of the second cask, so that all the
wine ran out. When the carter saw this, he again cried out, 'Miserable
wretch that I am!' But the sparrow answered, 'Not wretch enough yet!'
and perched on the head of the second horse, and pecked at him too. The
carter ran up and struck at her again with his hatchet; but away she
flew, and the blow fell upon the second horse and killed him on the
spot. 'Unlucky wretch that I am!' said he. 'Not wretch enough yet!' said
the sparrow; and perching upon the third horse, she began to peck him
too. The carter was mad with fury; and without looking about him, or
caring what he was about, struck again at the sparrow; but killed his
third horse as he done the other two. 'Alas! miserable wretch that I
am!' cried he. 'Not wretch enough yet!' answered the sparrow as she flew
away; 'now will I plague and punish thee at thy own house.' The carter
was forced at last to leave his cart behind him, and to go home
overflowing with rage and vexation. 'Alas!' said he to his wife, 'what
ill luck has befallen me! --my wine is all spilt, and my horses all
three dead.' 'Alas! husband,' replied she, 'and a wicked bird has come
into the house, and has brought with her all the birds in the world, I
am sure, and they have fallen upon our corn in the loft, and are eating
it up at such a rate!' Away ran the husband upstairs, and saw thousands
of birds sitting upon the floor eating up his corn, with the sparrow in
the midst of them. 'Unlucky wretch that I am!' cried the carter; for he
saw that the corn was almost all gone. 'Not wretch enough yet!' said the
sparrow; 'thy cruelty shall cost thee they life yet!' and away she flew.
The carter seeing that he had thus lost all that
he had, went down into his kitchen; and was still not sorry for what he
had done, but sat himself angrily and sulkily in the chimney corner. But
the sparrow sat on the outside of the window, and cried 'Carter! thy
cruelty shall cost thee thy life!' With that he jumped up in a rage,
seized his hatchet, and threw it at the sparrow; but it missed her, and
only broke the window. The sparrow now hopped in, perched upon the
window- seat, and cried, 'Carter! it shall cost thee thy life!' Then he
became mad and blind with rage, and struck the window-seat with such
force that he cleft it in two: and as the sparrow flew from place to
place, the carter and his wife were so furious, that they broke all
their furniture, glasses, chairs, benches, the table, and at last the
walls, without touching the bird at all. In the end, however, they
caught her: and the wife said, 'Shall I kill her at once?' 'No,' cried
he, 'that is letting her off too easily: she shall die a much more cruel
death; I will eat her.' But the sparrow began to flutter about, and
stretch out her neck and cried, 'Carter! it shall cost thee thy life
yet!' With that he could wait no longer: so he gave his wife the
hatchet, and cried, 'Wife, strike at the bird and kill her in my hand.'
And the wife struck; but she missed her aim, and hit her husband on the
head so that he fell down dead, and the sparrow flew quietly home to her
nest.
THE TWELVE DANCING PRINCESSES
There was a king who had twelve beautiful
daughters. They slept in twelve beds all in one room; and when they went
to bed, the doors were shut and locked up; but every morning their shoes
were found to be quite worn through as if they had been danced in all
night; and yet nobody could find out how it happened, or where they had
been.
Then the king made it known to all the land, that
if any person could discover the secret, and find out where it was that
the princesses danced in the night, he should have the one he liked best
for his wife, and should be king after his death; but whoever tried and
did not succeed, after three days and nights, should be put to death.
A king's son soon came. He was well entertained,
and in the evening was taken to the chamber next to the one where the
princesses lay in their twelve beds. There he was to sit and watch where
they went to dance; and, in order that nothing might pass without his
hearing it, the door of his chamber was left open. But the king's son
soon fell asleep; and when he awoke in the morning he found that the
princesses had all been dancing, for the soles of their shoes were full
of holes. The same thing happened the second and third night: so the
king ordered his head to be cut off. After him came several others; but
they had all the same luck, and all lost their lives in the same manner.
Now it chanced that an old soldier, who had been
wounded in battle and could fight no longer, passed through the country
where this king reigned: and as he was travelling through a wood, he met
an old woman, who asked him where he was going. 'I hardly know where I
am going, or what I had better do,' said the soldier; 'but I think I
should like very well to find out where it is that the princesses dance,
and then in time I might be a king.' 'Well,' said the old dame, 'that is
no very hard task: only take care not to drink any of the wine which one
of the princesses will bring to you in the evening; and as soon as she
leaves you pretend to be fast asleep.'
Then she gave him a cloak, and said, 'As soon as
you put that on you will become invisible, and you will then be able to
follow the princesses wherever they go.' When the soldier heard all this
good counsel, he determined to try his luck: so he went to the king, and
said he was willing to undertake the task.
He was as well received as the others had been,
and the king ordered fine royal robes to be given him; and when the
evening came he was led to the outer chamber. Just as he was going to
lie down, the eldest of the princesses brought him a cup of wine; but
the soldier threw it all away secretly, taking care not to drink a drop.
Then he laid himself down on his bed, and in a little while began to
snore very loud as if he was fast asleep. When the twelve princesses
heard this they laughed heartily; and the eldest said, 'This fellow too
might have done a wiser thing than lose his life in this way!' Then they
rose up and opened their drawers and boxes, and took out all their fine
clothes, and dressed themselves at the glass, and skipped about as if
they were eager to begin dancing. But the youngest said, 'I don't know
how it is, while you are so happy I feel very uneasy; I am sure some
mischance will befall us.' 'You simpleton,' said the eldest, 'you are
always afraid; have you forgotten how many kings' sons have already
watched in vain? And as for this soldier, even if I had not given him
his sleeping draught, he would have slept soundly enough.'
When they were all ready, they went and looked at
the soldier; but he snored on, and did not stir hand or foot: so they
thought they were quite safe; and the eldest went up to her own bed and
clapped her hands, and the bed sank into the floor and a trap-door flew
open. The soldier saw them going down through the trap-door one after
another, the eldest leading the way; and thinking he had no time to
lose, he jumped up, put on the cloak which the old woman had given him,
and followed them; but in the middle of the stairs he trod on the gown
of the youngest princess, and she cried out to her sisters, 'All is not
right; someone took hold of my gown.' 'You silly creature!' said the
eldest, 'it is nothing but a nail in the wall.' Then down they all went,
and at the bottom they found themselves in a most delightful grove of
trees; and the leaves were all of silver, and glittered and sparkled
beautifully. The soldier wished to take away some token of the place; so
he broke off a little branch, and there came a loud noise from the tree.
Then the youngest daughter said again, 'I am sure all is not right--did
not you hear that noise? That never happened before.' But the eldest
said, 'It is only our princes, who are shouting for joy at our
approach.'
Then they came to another grove of trees, where
all the leaves were of gold; and afterwards to a third, where the leaves
were all glittering diamonds. And the soldier broke a branch from each;
and every time there was a loud noise, which made the youngest sister
tremble with fear; but the eldest still said, it was only the princes,
who were crying for joy. So they went on till they came to a great lake;
and at the side of the lake there lay twelve little boats with twelve
handsome princes in them, who seemed to be waiting there for the
princesses.
One of the princesses went into each boat, and the
soldier stepped into the same boat with the youngest. As they were
rowing over the lake, the prince who was in the boat with the youngest
princess and the soldier said, 'I do not know why it is, but though I am
rowing with all my might we do not get on so fast as usual, and I am
quite tired: the boat seems very heavy today.' 'It is only the heat of
the weather,' said the princess: 'I feel it very warm too.'
On the other side of the lake stood a fine
illuminated castle, from which came the merry music of horns and
trumpets. There they all landed, and went into the castle, and each
prince danced with his princess; and the soldier, who was all the time
invisible, danced with them too; and when any of the princesses had a
cup of wine set by her, he drank it all up, so that when she put the cup
to her mouth it was empty. At this, too, the youngest sister was
terribly frightened, but the eldest always silenced her. They danced on
till three o'clock in the morning, and then all their shoes were worn
out, so that they were obliged to leave off. The princes rowed them back
again over the lake (but this time the soldier placed himself in the
boat with the eldest princess); and on the opposite shore they took
leave of each other, the princesses promising to come again the next
night.
When they came to the stairs, the soldier ran on
before the princesses, and laid himself down; and as the twelve sisters
slowly came up very much tired, they heard him snoring in his bed; so
they said, 'Now all is quite safe'; then they undressed themselves, put
away their fine clothes, pulled off their shoes, and went to bed. In the
morning the soldier said nothing about what had happened, but determined
to see more of this strange adventure, and went again the second and
third night; and every thing happened just as before; the princesses
danced each time till their shoes were worn to pieces, and then returned
home. However, on the third night the soldier carried away one of the
golden cups as a token of where he had been.
As soon as the time came when he was to declare
the secret, he was taken before the king with the three branches and the
golden cup; and the twelve princesses stood listening behind the door to
hear what he would say. And when the king asked him. 'Where do my twelve
daughters dance at night?' he answered, 'With twelve princes in a castle
under ground.' And then he told the king all that had happened, and
showed him the three branches and the golden cup which he had brought
with him. Then the king called for the princesses, and asked them
whether what the soldier said was true: and when they saw that they were
discovered, and that it was of no use to deny what had happened, they
confessed it all. And the king asked the soldier which of them he would
choose for his wife; and he answered, 'I am not very young, so I will
have the eldest.'--And they were married that very day, and the soldier
was chosen to be the king's heir.
THE FISHERMAN AND HIS WIFE
There was once a fisherman who lived with his wife
in a pigsty, close by the seaside. The fisherman used to go out all day
long a-fishing; and one day, as he sat on the shore with his rod,
looking at the sparkling waves and watching his line, all on a sudden
his float was dragged away deep into the water: and in drawing it up he
pulled out a great fish. But the fish said, 'Pray let me live! I am not
a real fish; I am an enchanted prince: put me in the water again, and
let me go!' 'Oh, ho!' said the man, 'you need not make so many words
about the matter; I will have nothing to do with a fish that can talk:
so swim away, sir, as soon as you please!' Then he put him back into the
water, and the fish darted straight down to the bottom, and left a long
streak of blood behind him on the wave.
When the fisherman went home to his wife in the
pigsty, he told her how he had caught a great fish, and how it had told
him it was an enchanted prince, and how, on hearing it speak, he had let
it go again. 'Did not you ask it for anything?' said the wife, 'we live
very wretchedly here, in this nasty dirty pigsty; do go back and tell
the fish we want a snug little cottage.'
The fisherman did not much like the business:
however, he went to the seashore; and when he came back there the water
looked all yellow and green. And he stood at the water's edge, and said:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
Then the fish came swimming to him, and said,
'Well, what is her will? What does your wife want?' 'Ah!' said the
fisherman, 'she says that when I had caught you, I ought to have asked
you for something before I let you go; she does not like living any
longer in the pigsty, and wants a snug little cottage.' 'Go home, then,'
said the fish; 'she is in the cottage already!' So the man went home,
and saw his wife standing at the door of a nice trim little cottage.
'Come in, come in!' said she; 'is not this much better than the filthy
pigsty we had?' And there was a parlour, and a bedchamber, and a
kitchen; and behind the cottage there was a little garden, planted with
all sorts of flowers and fruits; and there was a courtyard behind, full
of ducks and chickens. 'Ah!' said the fisherman, 'how happily we shall
live now!' 'We will try to do so, at least,' said his wife.
Everything went right for a week or two, and then
Dame Ilsabill said, 'Husband, there is not near room enough for us in
this cottage; the courtyard and the garden are a great deal too small; I
should like to have a large stone castle to live in: go to the fish
again and tell him to give us a castle.' 'Wife,' said the fisherman, 'I
don't like to go to him again, for perhaps he will be angry; we ought to
be easy with this pretty cottage to live in.' 'Nonsense!' said the wife;
'he will do it very willingly, I know; go along and try!'
The fisherman went, but his heart was very heavy:
and when he came to the sea, it looked blue and gloomy, though it was
very calm; and he went close to the edge of the waves, and said:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
'Well, what does she want now?' said the fish.
'Ah!' said the man, dolefully, 'my wife wants to live in a stone
castle.' 'Go home, then,' said the fish; 'she is standing at the gate of
it already.' So away went the fisherman, and found his wife standing
before the gate of a great castle. 'See,' said she, 'is not this grand?'
With that they went into the castle together, and found a great many
servants there, and the rooms all richly furnished, and full of golden
chairs and tables; and behind the castle was a garden, and around it was
a park half a mile long, full of sheep, and goats, and hares, and deer;
and in the courtyard were stables and cow-houses. 'Well,' said the man,
'now we will live cheerful and happy in this beautiful castle for the
rest of our lives.' 'Perhaps we may,' said the wife; 'but let us sleep
upon it, before we make up our minds to that.' So they went to bed.
The next morning when Dame Ilsabill awoke it was
broad daylight, and she jogged the fisherman with her elbow, and said,
'Get up, husband, and bestir yourself, for we must be king of all the
land.' 'Wife, wife,' said the man, 'why should we wish to be the king? I
will not be king.' 'Then I will,' said she. 'But, wife,' said the
fisherman, 'how can you be king--the fish cannot make you a king?'
'Husband,' said she, 'say no more about it, but go and try! I will be
king.' So the man went away quite sorrowful to think that his wife
should want to be king. This time the sea looked a dark grey colour, and
was overspread with curling waves and the ridges of foam as he cried
out:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
'Well, what would she have now?' said the fish.
'Alas!' said the poor man, 'my wife wants to be king.' 'Go home,' said
the fish; 'she is king already.'
Then the fisherman went home; and as he came close
to the palace he saw a troop of soldiers, and heard the sound of drums
and trumpets. And when he went in he saw his wife sitting on a throne of
gold and diamonds, with a golden crown upon her head; and on each side
of her stood six fair maidens, each a head taller than the other. 'Well,
wife,' said the fisherman, 'are you king?' 'Yes,' said she, 'I am king.'
And when he had looked at her for a long time, he said, 'Ah, wife! what
a fine thing it is to be king! Now we shall never have anything more to
wish for as long as we live.' 'I don't know how that may be,' said she;
'never is a long time. I am king, it is true; but I begin to be tired of
that, and I think I should like to be emperor.' 'Alas, wife! why should
you wish to be emperor?' said the fisherman. 'Husband,' said she, 'go to
the fish! I say I will be emperor.' 'Ah, wife!' replied the fisherman,
'the fish cannot make an emperor, I am sure, and I should not like to
ask him for such a thing.' 'I am king,' said Ilsabill, 'and you are my
slave; so go at once!'
So the fisherman was forced to go; and he muttered
as he went along, 'This will come to no good, it is too much to ask; the
fish will be tired at last, and then we shall be sorry for what we have
done.' He soon came to the seashore; and the water was quite black and
muddy, and a mighty whirlwind blew over the waves and rolled them about,
but he went as near as he could to the water's brink, and said:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
'What would she have now?' said the fish. 'Ah!'
said the fisherman, 'she wants to be emperor.' 'Go home,' said the fish;
'she is emperor already.'
So he went home again; and as he came near he saw
his wife Ilsabill sitting on a very lofty throne made of solid gold,
with a great crown on her head full two yards high; and on each side of
her stood her guards and attendants in a row, each one smaller than the
other, from the tallest giant down to a little dwarf no bigger than my
finger. And before her stood princes, and dukes, and earls: and the
fisherman went up to her and said, 'Wife, are you emperor?' 'Yes,' said
she, 'I am emperor.' 'Ah!' said the man, as he gazed upon her, 'what a
fine thing it is to be emperor!' 'Husband,' said she, 'why should we
stop at being emperor? I will be pope next.' 'O wife, wife!' said he,
'how can you be pope? there is but one pope at a time in Christendom.'
'Husband,' said she, 'I will be pope this very day.' 'But,' replied the
husband, 'the fish cannot make you pope.' 'What nonsense!' said she; 'if
he can make an emperor, he can make a pope: go and try him.'
So the fisherman went. But when he came to the
shore the wind was raging and the sea was tossed up and down in boiling
waves, and the ships were in trouble, and rolled fearfully upon the tops
of the billows. In the middle of the heavens there was a little piece of
blue sky, but towards the south all was red, as if a dreadful storm was
rising. At this sight the fisherman was dreadfully frightened, and he
trembled so that his knees knocked together: but still he went down near
to the shore, and said:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
'What does she want now?' said the fish. 'Ah!'
said the fisherman, 'my wife wants to be pope.' 'Go home,' said the
fish; 'she is pope already.'
Then the fisherman went home, and found Ilsabill
sitting on a throne that was two miles high. And she had three great
crowns on her head, and around her stood all the pomp and power of the
Church. And on each side of her were two rows of burning lights, of all
sizes, the greatest as large as the highest and biggest tower in the
world, and the least no larger than a small rushlight. 'Wife,' said the
fisherman, as he looked at all this greatness, 'are you pope?' 'Yes,'
said she, 'I am pope.' 'Well, wife,' replied he, 'it is a grand thing to
be pope; and now you must be easy, for you can be nothing greater.' 'I
will think about that,' said the wife. Then they went to bed: but Dame
Ilsabill could not sleep all night for thinking what she should be next.
At last, as she was dropping asleep, morning broke, and the sun rose.
'Ha!' thought she, as she woke up and looked at it through the window,
'after all I cannot prevent the sun rising.' At this thought she was
very angry, and wakened her husband, and said, 'Husband, go to the fish
and tell him I must be lord of the sun and moon.' The fisherman was half
asleep, but the thought frightened him so much that he started and fell
out of bed. 'Alas, wife!' said he, 'cannot you be easy with being pope?'
'No,' said she, 'I am very uneasy as long as the sun and moon rise
without my leave. Go to the fish at once!'
Then the man went shivering with fear; and as he
was going down to the shore a dreadful storm arose, so that the trees
and the very rocks shook. And all the heavens became black with stormy
clouds, and the lightnings played, and the thunders rolled; and you
might have seen in the sea great black waves, swelling up like mountains
with crowns of white foam upon their heads. And the fisherman crept
towards the sea, and cried out, as well as he could:
'O man of the sea! Hearken to me! My wife Ilsabill
Will have her own will, And hath sent me to beg a boon of thee!'
'What does she want now?' said the fish. 'Ah!'
said he, 'she wants to be lord of the sun and moon.' 'Go home,' said the
fish, 'to your pigsty again.'
And there they live to this very day.
THE WILLOW-WREN AND THE BEAR
Once in summer-time the bear and the wolf were
walking in the forest, and the bear heard a bird singing so beautifully
that he said: 'Brother wolf, what bird is it that sings so well?' 'That
is the King of birds,' said the wolf, 'before whom we must bow down.' In
reality the bird was the willow-wren. 'IF that's the case,' said the
bear, 'I should very much like to see his royal palace; come, take me
thither.' 'That is not done quite as you seem to think,' said the wolf;
'you must wait until the Queen comes,' Soon afterwards, the Queen
arrived with some food in her beak, and the lord King came too, and they
began to feed their young ones. The bear would have liked to go at once,
but the wolf held him back by the sleeve, and said: 'No, you must wait
until the lord and lady Queen have gone away again.' So they took stock
of the hole where the nest lay, and trotted away. The bear, however,
could not rest until he had seen the royal palace, and when a short time
had passed, went to it again. The King and Queen had just flown out, so
he peeped in and saw five or six young ones lying there. 'Is that the
royal palace?' cried the bear; 'it is a wretched palace, and you are not
King's children, you are disreputable children!' When the young wrens
heard that, they were frightfully angry, and screamed: 'No, that we are
not! Our parents are honest people! Bear, you will have to pay for
that!'
The bear and the wolf grew uneasy, and turned back
and went into their holes. The young willow-wrens, however, continued to
cry and scream, and when their parents again brought food they said: 'We
will not so much as touch one fly's leg, no, not if we were dying of
hunger, until you have settled whether we are respectable children or
not; the bear has been here and has insulted us!' Then the old King
said: 'Be easy, he shall be punished,' and he at once flew with the
Queen to the bear's cave, and called in: 'Old Growler, why have you
insulted my children? You shall suffer for it--we will punish you by a
bloody war.' Thus war was announced to the Bear, and all four-footed
animals were summoned to take part in it, oxen, asses, cows, deer, and
every other animal the earth contained. And the willow-wren summoned
everything which flew in the air, not only birds, large and small, but
midges, and hornets, bees and flies had to come.
When the time came for the war to begin, the
willow-wren sent out spies to discover who was the enemy's
commander-in-chief. The gnat, who was the most crafty, flew into the
forest where the enemy was assembled, and hid herself beneath a leaf of
the tree where the password was to be announced. There stood the bear,
and he called the fox before him and said: 'Fox, you are the most
cunning of all animals, you shall be general and lead us.' 'Good,' said
the fox, 'but what signal shall we agree upon?' No one knew that, so the
fox said: 'I have a fine long bushy tail, which almost looks like a
plume of red feathers. When I lift my tail up quite high, all is going
well, and you must charge; but if I let it hang down, run away as fast
as you can.' When the gnat had heard that, she flew away again, and
revealed everything, down to the minutest detail, to the willow-wren.
When day broke, and the battle was to begin, all the four-footed animals
came running up with such a noise that the earth trembled. The
willow-wren with his army also came flying through the air with such a
humming, and whirring, and swarming that every one was uneasy and
afraid, and on both sides they advanced against each other. But the
willow-wren sent down the hornet, with orders to settle beneath the
fox's tail, and sting with all his might. When the fox felt the first
string, he started so that he one leg, from pain, but he bore it, and
still kept his tail high in the air; at the second sting, he was forced
to put it down for a moment; at the third, he could hold out no longer,
screamed, and put his tail between his legs. When the animals saw that,
they thought all was lost, and began to flee, each into his hole, and
the birds had won the battle.
Then the King and Queen flew home to their
children and cried: 'Children, rejoice, eat and drink to your heart's
content, we have won the battle!' But the young wrens said: 'We will not
eat yet, the bear must come to the nest, and beg for pardon and say that
we are honourable children, before we will do that.' Then the
willow-wren flew to the bear's hole and cried: 'Growler, you are to come
to the nest to my children, and beg their pardon, or else every rib of
your body shall be broken.' So the bear crept thither in the greatest
fear, and begged their pardon. And now at last the young wrens were
satisfied, and sat down together and ate and drank, and made merry till
quite late into the night.
THE FROG-PRINCE
One fine evening a young princess put on her
bonnet and clogs, and went out to take a walk by herself in a wood; and
when she came to a cool spring of water, that rose in the midst of it,
she sat herself down to rest a while. Now she had a golden ball in her
hand, which was her favourite plaything; and she was always tossing it
up into the air, and catching it again as it fell. After a time she
threw it up so high that she missed catching it as it fell; and the ball
bounded away, and rolled along upon the ground, till at last it fell
down into the spring. The princess looked into the spring after her
ball, but it was very deep, so deep that she could not see the bottom of
it. Then she began to bewail her loss, and said, 'Alas! if I could only
get my ball again, I would give all my fine clothes and jewels, and
everything that I have in the world.'
Whilst she was speaking, a frog put its head out
of the water, and said, 'Princess, why do you weep so bitterly?' 'Alas!'
said she, 'what can you do for me, you nasty frog? My golden ball has
fallen into the spring.' The frog said, 'I want not your pearls, and
jewels, and fine clothes; but if you will love me, and let me live with
you and eat from off your golden plate, and sleep upon your bed, I will
bring you your ball again.' 'What nonsense,' thought the princess, 'this
silly frog is talking! He can never even get out of the spring to visit
me, though he may be able to get my ball for me, and therefore I will
tell him he shall have what he asks.' So she said to the frog, 'Well, if
you will bring me my ball, I will do all you ask.' Then the frog put his
head down, and dived deep under the water; and after a little while he
came up again, with the ball in his mouth, and threw it on the edge of
the spring. As soon as the young princess saw her ball, she ran to pick
it up; and she was so overjoyed to have it in her hand again, that she
never thought of the frog, but ran home with it as fast as she could.
The frog called after her, 'Stay, princess, and take me with you as you
said,' But she did not stop to hear a word.
The next day, just as the princess had sat down to
dinner, she heard a strange noise--tap, tap--plash, plash--as if
something was coming up the marble staircase: and soon afterwards there
was a gentle knock at the door, and a little voice cried out and said:
'Open the door, my princess dear, Open the door to
thy true love here! And mind the words that thou and I said By the
fountain cool, in the greenwood shade.'
Then the princess ran to the door and opened it,
and there she saw the frog, whom she had quite forgotten. At this sight
she was sadly frightened, and shutting the door as fast as she could
came back to her seat. The king, her father, seeing that something had
frightened her, asked her what was the matter. 'There is a nasty frog,'
said she, 'at the door, that lifted my ball for me out of the spring
this morning: I told him that he should live with me here, thinking that
he could never get out of the spring; but there he is at the door, and
he wants to come in.'
While she was speaking the frog knocked again at
the door, and said:
'Open the door, my princess dear, Open the door to
thy true love here! And mind the words that thou and I said By the
fountain cool, in the greenwood shade.'
Then the king said to the young princess, 'As you
have given your word you must keep it; so go and let him in.' She did
so, and the frog hopped into the room, and then straight on--tap,
tap--plash, plash-- from the bottom of the room to the top, till he came
up close to the table where the princess sat. 'Pray lift me upon chair,'
said he to the princess, 'and let me sit next to you.' As soon as she
had done this, the frog said, 'Put your plate nearer to me, that I may
eat out of it.' This she did, and when he had eaten as much as he could,
he said, 'Now I am tired; carry me upstairs, and put me into your bed.'
And the princess, though very unwilling, took him up in her hand, and
put him upon the pillow of her own bed, where he slept all night long.
As soon as it was light he jumped up, hopped downstairs, and went out of
the house. 'Now, then,' thought the princess, 'at last he is gone, and I
shall be troubled with him no more.'
But she was mistaken; for when night came again
she heard the same tapping at the door; and the frog came once more, and
said:
'Open the door, my princess dear, Open the door to
thy true love here! And mind the words that thou and I said By the
fountain cool, in the greenwood shade.'
And when the princess opened the door the frog
came in, and slept upon her pillow as before, till the morning broke.
And the third night he did the same. But when the princess awoke on the
following morning she was astonished to see, instead of the frog, a
handsome prince, gazing on her with the most beautiful eyes she had ever
seen, and standing at the head of her bed.
He told her that he had been enchanted by a
spiteful fairy, who had changed him into a frog; and that he had been
fated so to abide till some princess should take him out of the spring,
and let him eat from her plate, and sleep upon her bed for three nights.
'You,' said the prince, 'have broken his cruel charm, and now I have
nothing to wish for but that you should go with me into my father's
kingdom, where I will marry you, and love you as long as you live.'
The young princess, you may be sure, was not long
in saying 'Yes' to all this; and as they spoke a gay coach drove up,
with eight beautiful horses, decked with plumes of feathers and a golden
harness; and behind the coach rode the prince's servant, faithful
Heinrich, who had bewailed the misfortunes of his dear master during his
enchantment so long and so bitterly, that his heart had well-nigh burst.
They then took leave of the king, and got into the
coach with eight horses, and all set out, full of joy and merriment, for
the prince's kingdom, which they reached safely; and there they lived
happily a great many years.
CAT AND MOUSE IN PARTNERSHIP
A certain cat had made the acquaintance of a
mouse, and had said so much to her about the great love and friendship
she felt for her, that at length the mouse agreed that they should live
and keep house together. 'But we must make a provision for winter, or
else we shall suffer from hunger,' said the cat; 'and you, little mouse,
cannot venture everywhere, or you will be caught in a trap some day.'
The good advice was followed, and a pot of fat was bought, but they did
not know where to put it. At length, after much consideration, the cat
said: 'I know no place where it will be better stored up than in the
church, for no one dares take anything away from there. We will set it
beneath the altar, and not touch it until we are really in need of it.'
So the pot was placed in safety, but it was not long before the cat had
a great yearning for it, and said to the mouse: 'I want to tell you
something, little mouse; my cousin has brought a little son into the
world, and has asked me to be godmother; he is white with brown spots,
and I am to hold him over the font at the christening. Let me go out
today, and you look after the house by yourself.' 'Yes, yes,' answered
the mouse, 'by all means go, and if you get anything very good to eat,
think of me. I should like a drop of sweet red christening wine myself.'
All this, however, was untrue; the cat had no cousin, and had not been
asked to be godmother. She went straight to the church, stole to the pot
of fat, began to lick at it, and licked the top of the fat off. Then she
took a walk upon the roofs of the town, looked out for opportunities,
and then stretched herself in the sun, and licked her lips whenever she
thought of the pot of fat, and not until it was evening did she return
home. 'Well, here you are again,' said the mouse, 'no doubt you have had
a merry day.' 'All went off well,' answered the cat. 'What name did they
give the child?' 'Top off!' said the cat quite coolly. 'Top off!' cried
the mouse, 'that is a very odd and uncommon name, is it a usual one in
your family?' 'What does that matter,' said the cat, 'it is no worse
than Crumb-stealer, as your godchildren are called.'
Before long the cat was seized by another fit of
yearning. She said to the mouse: 'You must do me a favour, and once more
manage the house for a day alone. I am again asked to be godmother, and,
as the child has a white ring round its neck, I cannot refuse.' The good
mouse consented, but the cat crept behind the town walls to the church,
and devoured half the pot of fat. 'Nothing ever seems so good as what
one keeps to oneself,' said she, and was quite satisfied with her day's
work. When she went home the mouse inquired: 'And what was the child
christened?' 'Half-done,' answered the cat. 'Half-done! What are you
saying? I never heard the name in my life, I'll wager anything it is not
in the calendar!'
The cat's mouth soon began to water for some more
licking. 'All good things go in threes,' said she, 'I am asked to stand
godmother again. The child is quite black, only it has white paws, but
with that exception, it has not a single white hair on its whole body;
this only happens once every few years, you will let me go, won't you?'
'Top- off! Half-done!' answered the mouse, 'they are such odd names,
they make me very thoughtful.' 'You sit at home,' said the cat, 'in your
dark-grey fur coat and long tail, and are filled with fancies, that's
because you do not go out in the daytime.' During the cat's absence the
mouse cleaned the house, and put it in order, but the greedy cat
entirely emptied the pot of fat. 'When everything is eaten up one has
some peace,' said she to herself, and well filled and fat she did not
return home till night. The mouse at once asked what name had been given
to the third child. 'It will not please you more than the others,' said
the cat. 'He is called All-gone.' 'All-gone,' cried the mouse 'that is
the most suspicious name of all! I have never seen it in print.
All-gone; what can that mean?' and she shook her head, curled herself
up, and lay down to sleep.
From this time forth no one invited the cat to be
godmother, but when the winter had come and there was no longer anything
to be found outside, the mouse thought of their provision, and said:
'Come, cat, we will go to our pot of fat which we have stored up for
ourselves--we shall enjoy that.' 'Yes,' answered the cat, 'you will
enjoy it as much as you would enjoy sticking that dainty tongue of yours
out of the window.' They set out on their way, but when they arrived,
the pot of fat certainly was still in its place, but it was empty.
'Alas!' said the mouse, 'now I see what has happened, now it comes to
light! You a true friend! You have devoured all when you were standing
godmother. First top off, then half-done, then--' 'Will you hold your
tongue,' cried the cat, 'one word more, and I will eat you too.'
'All-gone' was already on the poor mouse's lips; scarcely had she spoken
it before the cat sprang on her, seized her, and swallowed her down.
Verily, that is the way of the world.
THE GOOSE-GIRL
The king of a great land died, and left his queen
to take care of their only child. This child was a daughter, who was
very beautiful; and her mother loved her dearly, and was very kind to
her. And there was a good fairy too, who was fond of the princess, and
helped her mother to watch over her. When she grew up, she was betrothed
to a prince who lived a great way off; and as the time drew near for her
to be married, she got ready to set off on her journey to his country.
Then the queen her mother, packed up a great many costly things; jewels,
and gold, and silver; trinkets, fine dresses, and in short everything
that became a royal bride. And she gave her a waiting-maid to ride with
her, and give her into the bridegroom's hands; and each had a horse for
the journey. Now the princess's horse was the fairy's gift, and it was
called Falada, and could speak.
When the time came for them to set out, the fairy
went into her bed- chamber, and took a little knife, and cut off a lock
of her hair, and gave it to the princess, and said, 'Take care of it,
dear child; for it is a charm that may be of use to you on the road.'
Then they all took a sorrowful leave of the princess; and she put the
lock of hair into her bosom, got upon her horse, and set off on her
journey to her bridegroom's kingdom.
One day, as they were riding along by a brook, the
princess began to feel very thirsty: and she said to her maid, 'Pray get
down, and fetch me some water in my golden cup out of yonder brook, for
I want to drink.' 'Nay,' said the maid, 'if you are thirsty, get off
yourself, and stoop down by the water and drink; I shall not be your
waiting- maid any longer.' Then she was so thirsty that she got down,
and knelt over the little brook, and drank; for she was frightened, and
dared not bring out her golden cup; and she wept and said, 'Alas! what
will become of me?' And the lock answered her, and said:
'Alas! alas! if thy mother knew it, Sadly, sadly,
would she rue it.'
But the princess was very gentle and meek, so she
said nothing to her maid's ill behaviour, but got upon her horse again.
Then all rode farther on their journey, till the
day grew so warm, and the sun so scorching, that the bride began to feel
very thirsty again; and at last, when they came to a river, she forgot
her maid's rude speech, and said, 'Pray get down, and fetch me some
water to drink in my golden cup.' But the maid answered her, and even
spoke more haughtily than before: 'Drink if you will, but I shall not be
your waiting-maid.' Then the princess was so thirsty that she got off
her horse, and lay down, and held her head over the running stream, and
cried and said, 'What will become of me?' And the lock of hair answered
her again:
'Alas! alas! if thy mother knew it, Sadly, sadly,
would she rue it.'
And as she leaned down to drink, the lock of hair
fell from her bosom, and floated away with the water. Now she was so
frightened that she did not see it; but her maid saw it, and was very
glad, for she knew the charm; and she saw that the poor bride would be
in her power, now that she had lost the hair. So when the bride had done
drinking, and would have got upon Falada again, the maid said, 'I shall
ride upon Falada, and you may have my horse instead'; so she was forced
to give up her horse, and soon afterwards to take off her royal clothes
and put on her maid's shabby ones.
At last, as they drew near the end of their
journey, this treacherous servant threatened to kill her mistress if she
ever told anyone what had happened. But Falada saw it all, and marked it
well.
Then the waiting-maid got upon Falada, and the
real bride rode upon the other horse, and they went on in this way till
at last they came to the royal court. There was great joy at their
coming, and the prince flew to meet them, and lifted the maid from her
horse, thinking she was the one who was to be his wife; and she was led
upstairs to the royal chamber; but the true princess was told to stay in
the court below.
Now the old king happened just then to have
nothing else to do; so he amused himself by sitting at his kitchen
window, looking at what was going on; and he saw her in the courtyard.
As she looked very pretty, and too delicate for a waiting-maid, he went
up into the royal chamber to ask the bride who it was she had brought
with her, that was thus left standing in the court below. 'I brought her
with me for the sake of her company on the road,' said she; 'pray give
the girl some work to do, that she may not be idle.' The old king could
not for some time think of any work for her to do; but at last he said,
'I have a lad who takes care of my geese; she may go and help him.' Now
the name of this lad, that the real bride was to help in watching the
king's geese, was Curdken.
But the false bride said to the prince, 'Dear
husband, pray do me one piece of kindness.' 'That I will,' said the
prince. 'Then tell one of your slaughterers to cut off the head of the
horse I rode upon, for it was very unruly, and plagued me sadly on the
road'; but the truth was, she was very much afraid lest Falada should
some day or other speak, and tell all she had done to the princess. She
carried her point, and the faithful Falada was killed; but when the true
princess heard of it, she wept, and begged the man to nail up Falada's
head against a large dark gate of the city, through which she had to
pass every morning and evening, that there she might still see him
sometimes. Then the slaughterer said he would do as she wished; and cut
off the head, and nailed it up under the dark gate.
Early the next morning, as she and Curdken went
out through the gate, she said sorrowfully:
'Falada, Falada, there thou hangest!'
and the head answered:
'Bride, bride, there thou gangest! Alas! alas! if
thy mother knew it, Sadly, sadly, would she rue it.'
Then they went out of the city, and drove the
geese on. And when she came to the meadow, she sat down upon a bank
there, and let down her waving locks of hair, which were all of pure
silver; and when Curdken saw it glitter in the sun, he ran up, and would
have pulled some of the locks out, but she cried:
'Blow, breezes, blow! Let Curdken's hat go! Blow,
breezes, blow! Let him after it go! O'er hills, dales, and rocks, Away
be it whirl'd Till the silvery locks Are all comb'd and curl'd!
Then there came a wind, so strong that it blew off
Curdken's hat; and away it flew over the hills: and he was forced to
turn and run after it; till, by the time he came back, she had done
combing and curling her hair, and had put it up again safe. Then he was
very angry and sulky, and would not speak to her at all; but they
watched the geese until it grew dark in the evening, and then drove them
homewards.
The next morning, as they were going through the
dark gate, the poor girl looked up at Falada's head, and cried:
'Falada, Falada, there thou hangest!'
and the head answered:
'Bride, bride, there thou gangest! Alas! alas! if
they mother knew it, Sadly, sadly, would she rue it.'
Then she drove on the geese, and sat down again in
the meadow, and began to comb out her hair as before; and Curdken ran up
to her, and wanted to take hold of it; but she cried out quickly:
'Blow, breezes, blow! Let Curdken's hat go! Blow,
breezes, blow! Let him after it go! O'er hills, dales, and rocks, Away
be it whirl'd Till the silvery locks Are all comb'd and curl'd!
Then the wind came and blew away his hat; and off
it flew a great way, over the hills and far away, so that he had to run
after it; and when he came back she had bound up her hair again, and all
was safe. So they watched the geese till it grew dark.
In the evening, after they came home, Curdken went
to the old king, and said, 'I cannot have that strange girl to help me
to keep the geese any longer.' 'Why?' said the king. 'Because, instead
of doing any good, she does nothing but tease me all day long.' Then the
king made him tell him what had happened. And Curdken said, 'When we go
in the morning through the dark gate with our flock of geese, she cries
and talks with the head of a horse that hangs upon the wall, and says:
'Falada, Falada, there thou hangest!'
and the head answers:
'Bride, bride, there thou gangest! Alas! alas! if
they mother knew it, Sadly, sadly, would she rue it.'
And Curdken went on telling the king what had
happened upon the meadow where the geese fed; how his hat was blown
away; and how he was forced to run after it, and to leave his flock of
geese to themselves. But the old king told the boy to go out again the
next day: and when morning came, he placed himself behind the dark gate,
and heard how she spoke to Falada, and how Falada answered. Then he went
into the field, and hid himself in a bush by the meadow's side; and he
soon saw with his own eyes how they drove the flock of geese; and how,
after a little time, she let down her hair that glittered in the sun.
And then he heard her say:
'Blow, breezes, blow! Let Curdken's hat go! Blow,
breezes, blow! Let him after it go! O'er hills, dales, and rocks, Away
be it whirl'd Till the silvery locks Are all comb'd and curl'd!
And soon came a gale of wind, and carried away
Curdken's hat, and away went Curdken after it, while the girl went on
combing and curling her hair. All this the old king saw: so he went home
without being seen; and when the little goose-girl came back in the
evening he called her aside, and asked her why she did so: but she burst
into tears, and said, 'That I must not tell you or any man, or I shall
lose my life.'
But the old king begged so hard, that she had no
peace till she had told him all the tale, from beginning to end, word
for word. And it was very lucky for her that she did so, for when she
had done the king ordered royal clothes to be put upon her, and gazed on
her with wonder, she was so beautiful. Then he called his son and told
him that he had only a false bride; for that she was merely a
waiting-maid, while the true bride stood by. And the young king rejoiced
when he saw her beauty, and heard how meek and patient she had been; and
without saying anything to the false bride, the king ordered a great
feast to be got ready for all his court. The bridegroom sat at the top,
with the false princess on one side, and the true one on the other; but
nobody knew her again, for her beauty was quite dazzling to their eyes;
and she did not seem at all like the little goose-girl, now that she had
her brilliant dress on.
When they had eaten and drank, and were very
merry, the old king said he would tell them a tale. So he began, and
told all the story of the princess, as if it was one that he had once
heard; and he asked the true waiting-maid what she thought ought to be
done to anyone who would behave thus. 'Nothing better,' said this false
bride, 'than that she should be thrown into a cask stuck round with
sharp nails, and that two white horses should be put to it, and should
drag it from street to street till she was dead.' 'Thou art she!' said
the old king; 'and as thou has judged thyself, so shall it be done to
thee.' And the young king was then married to his true wife, and they
reigned over the kingdom in peace and happiness all their lives; and the
good fairy came to see them, and restored the faithful Falada to life
again.
THE ADVENTURES OF CHANTICLEER AND PARTLET
1. HOW THEY WENT TO THE MOUNTAINS TO EAT NUTS
'The nuts are quite ripe now,' said Chanticleer to
his wife Partlet, 'suppose we go together to the mountains, and eat as
many as we can, before the squirrel takes them all away.' 'With all my
heart,' said Partlet, 'let us go and make a holiday of it together.'
So they went to the mountains; and as it was a
lovely day, they stayed there till the evening. Now, whether it was that
they had eaten so many nuts that they could not walk, or whether they
were lazy and would not, I do not know: however, they took it into their
heads that it did not become them to go home on foot. So Chanticleer
began to build a little carriage of nutshells: and when it was finished,
Partlet jumped into it and sat down, and bid Chanticleer harness himself
to it and draw her home. 'That's a good joke!' said Chanticleer; 'no,
that will never do; I had rather by half walk home; I'll sit on the box
and be coachman, if you like, but I'll not draw.' While this was
passing, a duck came quacking up and cried out, 'You thieving vagabonds,
what business have you in my grounds? I'll give it you well for your
insolence!' and upon that she fell upon Chanticleer most lustily. But
Chanticleer was no coward, and returned the duck's blows with his sharp
spurs so fiercely that she soon began to cry out for mercy; which was
only granted her upon condition that she would draw the carriage home
for them. This she agreed to do; and Chanticleer got upon the box, and
drove, crying, 'Now, duck, get on as fast as you can.' And away they
went at a pretty good pace.
After they had travelled along a little way, they
met a needle and a pin walking together along the road: and the needle
cried out, 'Stop, stop!' and said it was so dark that they could hardly
find their way, and such dirty walking they could not get on at all: he
told them that he and his friend, the pin, had been at a public-house a
few miles off, and had sat drinking till they had forgotten how late it
was; he begged therefore that the travellers would be so kind as to give
them a lift in their carriage. Chanticleer observing that they were but
thin fellows, and not likely to take up much room, told them they might
ride, but made them promise not to dirty the wheels of the carriage in
getting in, nor to tread on Partlet's toes.
Late at night they arrived at an inn; and as it
was bad travelling in the dark, and the duck seemed much tired, and
waddled about a good deal from one side to the other, they made up their
minds to fix their quarters there: but the landlord at first was
unwilling, and said his house was full, thinking they might not be very
respectable company: however, they spoke civilly to him, and gave him
the egg which Partlet had laid by the way, and said they would give him
the duck, who was in the habit of laying one every day: so at last he
let them come in, and they bespoke a handsome supper, and spent the
evening very jollily.
Early in the morning, before it was quite light,
and when nobody was stirring in the inn, Chanticleer awakened his wife,
and, fetching the egg, they pecked a hole in it, ate it up, and threw
the shells into the fireplace: they then went to the pin and needle, who
were fast asleep, and seizing them by the heads, stuck one into the
landlord's easy chair and the other into his handkerchief; and, having
done this, they crept away as softly as possible. However, the duck, who
slept in the open air in the yard, heard them coming, and jumping into
the brook which ran close by the inn, soon swam out of their reach.
An hour or two afterwards the landlord got up, and
took his handkerchief to wipe his face, but the pin ran into him and
pricked him: then he walked into the kitchen to light his pipe at the
fire, but when he stirred it up the eggshells flew into his eyes, and
almost blinded him. 'Bless me!' said he, 'all the world seems to have a
design against my head this morning': and so saying, he threw himself
sulkily into his easy chair; but, oh dear! the needle ran into him; and
this time the pain was not in his head. He now flew into a very great
passion, and, suspecting the company who had come in the night before,
he went to look after them, but they were all off; so he swore that he
never again would take in such a troop of vagabonds, who ate a great
deal, paid no reckoning, and gave him nothing for his trouble but their
apish tricks.
2. HOW CHANTICLEER AND PARTLET WENT TO VIST MR
KORBES
Another day, Chanticleer and Partlet wished to
ride out together; so Chanticleer built a handsome carriage with four
red wheels, and harnessed six mice to it; and then he and Partlet got
into the carriage, and away they drove. Soon afterwards a cat met them,
and said, 'Where are you going?' And Chanticleer replied,
'All on our way A visit to pay To Mr Korbes, the
fox, today.'
Then the cat said, 'Take me with you,' Chanticleer
said, 'With all my heart: get up behind, and be sure you do not fall
off.'
'Take care of this handsome coach of mine, Nor
dirty my pretty red wheels so fine! Now, mice, be ready, And, wheels,
run steady! For we are going a visit to pay To Mr Korbes, the fox,
today.'
Soon after came up a millstone, an egg, a duck,
and a pin; and Chanticleer gave them all leave to get into the carriage
and go with them.
When they arrived at Mr Korbes's house, he was not
at home; so the mice drew the carriage into the coach-house, Chanticleer
and Partlet flew upon a beam, the cat sat down in the fireplace, the
duck got into the washing cistern, the pin stuck himself into the bed
pillow, the millstone laid himself over the house door, and the egg
rolled himself up in the towel.
When Mr Korbes came home, he went to the fireplace
to make a fire; but the cat threw all the ashes in his eyes: so he ran
to the kitchen to wash himself; but there the duck splashed all the
water in his face; and when he tried to wipe himself, the egg broke to
pieces in the towel all over his face and eyes. Then he was very angry,
and went without his supper to bed; but when he laid his head on the
pillow, the pin ran into his cheek: at this he became quite furious,
and, jumping up, would have run out of the house; but when he came to
the door, the millstone fell down on his head, and killed him on the
spot.
3. HOW PARTLET DIED AND WAS BURIED, AND HOW
CHANTICLEER DIED OF GRIEF
Another day Chanticleer and Partlet agreed to go
again to the mountains to eat nuts; and it was settled that all the nuts
which they found should be shared equally between them. Now Partlet
found a very large nut; but she said nothing about it to Chanticleer,
and kept it all to herself: however, it was so big that she could not
swallow it, and it stuck in her throat. Then she was in a great fright,
and cried out to Chanticleer, 'Pray run as fast as you can, and fetch me
some water, or I shall be choked.' Chanticleer ran as fast as he could
to the river, and said, 'River, give me some water, for Partlet lies in
the mountain, and will be choked by a great nut.' The river said, 'Run
first to the bride, and ask her for a silken cord to draw up the water.'
Chanticleer ran to the bride, and said, 'Bride, you must give me a
silken cord, for then the river will give me water, and the water I will
carry to Partlet, who lies on the mountain, and will be choked by a
great nut.' But the bride said, 'Run first, and bring me my garland that
is hanging on a willow in the garden.' Then Chanticleer ran to the
garden, and took the garland from the bough where it hung, and brought
it to the bride; and then the bride gave him the silken cord, and he
took the silken cord to the river, and the river gave him water, and he
carried the water to Partlet; but in the meantime she was choked by the
great nut, and lay quite dead, and never moved any more.
Then Chanticleer was very sorry, and cried
bitterly; and all the beasts came and wept with him over poor Partlet.
And six mice built a little hearse to carry her to her grave; and when
it was ready they harnessed themselves before it, and Chanticleer drove
them. On the way they met the fox. 'Where are you going, Chanticleer?'
said he. 'To bury my Partlet,' said the other. 'May I go with you?' said
the fox. 'Yes; but you must get up behind, or my horses will not be able
to draw you.' Then the fox got up behind; and presently the wolf, the
bear, the goat, and all the beasts of the wood, came and climbed upon
the hearse.
So on they went till they came to a rapid stream.
'How shall we get over?' said Chanticleer. Then said a straw, 'I will
lay myself across, and you may pass over upon me.' But as the mice were
going over, the straw slipped away and fell into the water, and the six
mice all fell in and were drowned. What was to be done? Then a large log
of wood came and said, 'I am big enough; I will lay myself across the
stream, and you shall pass over upon me.' So he laid himself down; but
they managed so clumsily, that the log of wood fell in and was carried
away by the stream. Then a stone, who saw what had happened, came up and
kindly offered to help poor Chanticleer by laying himself across the
stream; and this time he got safely to the other side with the hearse,
and managed to get Partlet out of it; but the fox and the other
mourners, who were sitting behind, were too heavy, and fell back into
the water and were all carried away by the stream and drowned.
Thus Chanticleer was left alone with his dead
Partlet; and having dug a grave for her, he laid her in it, and made a
little hillock over her. Then he sat down by the grave, and wept and
mourned, till at last he died too; and so all were dead.
RAPUNZEL
There were once a man and a woman who had long in
vain wished for a child. At length the woman hoped that God was about to
grant her desire. These people had a little window at the back of their
house from which a splendid garden could be seen, which was full of the
most beautiful flowers and herbs. It was, however, surrounded by a high
wall, and no one dared to go into it because it belonged to an
enchantress, who had great power and was dreaded by all the world. One
day the woman was standing by this window and looking down into the
garden, when she saw a bed which was planted with the most beautiful
rampion (rapunzel), and it looked so fresh and green that she longed for
it, she quite pined away, and began to look pale and miserable. Then her
husband was alarmed, and asked: 'What ails you, dear wife?' 'Ah,' she
replied, 'if I can't eat some of the rampion, which is in the garden
behind our house, I shall die.' The man, who loved her, thought: 'Sooner
than let your wife die, bring her some of the rampion yourself, let it
cost what it will.' At twilight, he clambered down over the wall into
the garden of the enchantress, hastily clutched a handful of rampion,
and took it to his wife. She at once made herself a salad of it, and ate
it greedily. It tasted so good to her--so very good, that the next day
she longed for it three times as much as before. If he was to have any
rest, her husband must once more descend into the garden. In the gloom
of evening therefore, he let himself down again; but when he had
clambered down the wall he was terribly afraid, for he saw the
enchantress standing before him. 'How can you dare,' said she with angry
look, 'descend into my garden and steal my rampion like a thief? You
shall suffer for it!' 'Ah,' answered he, 'let mercy take the place of
justice, I only made up my mind to do it out of necessity. My wife saw
your rampion from the window, and felt such a longing for it that she
would have died if she had not got some to eat.' Then the enchantress
allowed her anger to be softened, and said to him: 'If the case be as
you say, I will allow you to take away with you as much rampion as you
will, only I make one condition, you must give me the child which your
wife will bring into the world; it shall be well treated, and I will
care for it like a mother.' The man in his terror consented to
everything, and when the woman was brought to bed, the enchantress
appeared at once, gave the child the name of Rapunzel, and took it away
with her.
Rapunzel grew into the most beautiful child under
the sun. When she was twelve years old, the enchantress shut her into a
tower, which lay in a forest, and had neither stairs nor door, but quite
at the top was a little window. When the enchantress wanted to go in,
she placed herself beneath it and cried:
'Rapunzel, Rapunzel, Let down your hair to me.'
Rapunzel had magnificent long hair, fine as spun
gold, and when she heard the voice of the enchantress she unfastened her
braided tresses, wound them round one of the hooks of the window above,
and then the hair fell twenty ells down, and the enchantress climbed up
by it.
After a year or two, it came to pass that the
king's son rode through the forest and passed by the tower. Then he
heard a song, which was so charming that he stood still and listened.
This was Rapunzel, who in her solitude passed her time in letting her
sweet voice resound. The king's son wanted to climb up to her, and
looked for the door of the tower, but none was to be found. He rode
home, but the singing had so deeply touched his heart, that every day he
went out into the forest and listened to it. Once when he was thus
standing behind a tree, he saw that an enchantress came there, and he
heard how she cried:
'Rapunzel, Rapunzel, Let down your hair to me.'
Then Rapunzel let down the braids of her hair, and
the enchantress climbed up to her. 'If that is the ladder by which one
mounts, I too will try my fortune,' said he, and the next day when it
began to grow dark, he went to the tower and cried:
'Rapunzel, Rapunzel, Let down your hair to me.'
Immediately the hair fell down and the king's son
climbed up.
At first Rapunzel was terribly frightened when a
man, such as her eyes had never yet beheld, came to her; but the king's
son began to talk to her quite like a friend, and told her that his
heart had been so stirred that it had let him have no rest, and he had
been forced to see her. Then Rapunzel lost her fear, and when he asked
her if she would take him for her husband, and she saw that he was young
and handsome, she thought: 'He will love me more than old Dame Gothel
does'; and she said yes, and laid her hand in his. She said: 'I will
willingly go away with you, but I do not know how to get down. Bring
with you a skein of silk every time that you come, and I will weave a
ladder with it, and when that is ready I will descend, and you will take
me on your horse.' They agreed that until that time he should come to
her every evening, for the old woman came by day. The enchantress
remarked nothing of this, until once Rapunzel said to her: 'Tell me,
Dame Gothel, how it happens that you are so much heavier for me to draw
up than the young king's son--he is with me in a moment.' 'Ah! you
wicked child,' cried the enchantress. 'What do I hear you say! I thought
I had separated you from all the world, and yet you have deceived me!'
In her anger she clutched Rapunzel's beautiful tresses, wrapped them
twice round her left hand, seized a pair of scissors with the right, and
snip, snap, they were cut off, and the lovely braids lay on the ground.
And she was so pitiless that she took poor Rapunzel into a desert where
she had to live in great grief and misery.
On the same day that she cast out Rapunzel,
however, the enchantress fastened the braids of hair, which she had cut
off, to the hook of the window, and when the king's son came and cried:
'Rapunzel, Rapunzel, Let down your hair to me.'
she let the hair down. The king's son ascended,
but instead of finding his dearest Rapunzel, he found the enchantress,
who gazed at him with wicked and venomous looks. 'Aha!' she cried
mockingly, 'you would fetch your dearest, but the beautiful bird sits no
longer singing in the nest; the cat has got it, and will scratch out
your eyes as well. Rapunzel is lost to you; you will never see her
again.' The king's son was beside himself with pain, and in his despair
he leapt down from the tower. He escaped with his life, but the thorns
into which he fell pierced his eyes. Then he wandered quite blind about
the forest, ate nothing but roots and berries, and did naught but lament
and weep over the loss of his dearest wife. Thus he roamed about in
misery for some years, and at length came to the desert where Rapunzel,
with the twins to which she had given birth, a boy and a girl, lived in
wretchedness. He heard a voice, and it seemed so familiar to him that he
went towards it, and when he approached, Rapunzel knew him and fell on
his neck and wept. Two of her tears wetted his eyes and they grew clear
again, and he could see with them as before. He led her to his kingdom
where he was joyfully received, and they lived for a long time
afterwards, happy and contented.
FUNDEVOGEL
There was once a forester who went into the forest
to hunt, and as he entered it he heard a sound of screaming as if a
little child were there. He followed the sound, and at last came to a
high tree, and at the top of this a little child was sitting, for the
mother had fallen asleep under the tree with the child, and a bird of
prey had seen it in her arms, had flown down, snatched it away, and set
it on the high tree.
The forester climbed up, brought the child down,
and thought to himself: 'You will take him home with you, and bring him
up with your Lina.' He took it home, therefore, and the two children
grew up together. And the one, which he had found on a tree was called
Fundevogel, because a bird had carried it away. Fundevogel and Lina
loved each other so dearly that when they did not see each other they
were sad.
Now the forester had an old cook, who one evening
took two pails and began to fetch water, and did not go once only, but
many times, out to the spring. Lina saw this and said, 'Listen, old
Sanna, why are you fetching so much water?' 'If you will never repeat it
to anyone, I will tell you why.' So Lina said, no, she would never
repeat it to anyone, and then the cook said: 'Early tomorrow morning,
when the forester is out hunting, I will heat the water, and when it is
boiling in the kettle, I will throw in Fundevogel, and will boil him in
it.'
Early next morning the forester got up and went
out hunting, and when he was gone the children were still in bed. Then
Lina said to Fundevogel: 'If you will never leave me, I too will never
leave you.' Fundevogel said: 'Neither now, nor ever will I leave you.'
Then said Lina: 'Then will I tell you. Last night, old Sanna carried so
many buckets of water into the house that I asked her why she was doing
that, and she said that if I would promise not to tell anyone, and she
said that early tomorrow morning when father was out hunting, she would
set the kettle full of water, throw you into it and boil you; but we
will get up quickly, dress ourselves, and go away together.'
The two children therefore got up, dressed
themselves quickly, and went away. When the water in the kettle was
boiling, the cook went into the bedroom to fetch Fundevogel and throw
him into it. But when she came in, and went to the beds, both the
children were gone. Then she was terribly alarmed, and she said to
herself: 'What shall I say now when the forester comes home and sees
that the children are gone? They must be followed instantly to get them
back again.'
Then the cook sent three servants after them, who
were to run and overtake the children. The children, however, were
sitting outside the forest, and when they saw from afar the three
servants running, Lina said to Fundevogel: 'Never leave me, and I will
never leave you.' Fundevogel said: 'Neither now, nor ever.' Then said
Lina: 'Do you become a rose-tree, and I the rose upon it.' When the
three servants came to the forest, nothing was there but a rose-tree and
one rose on it, but the children were nowhere. Then said they: 'There is
nothing to be done here,' and they went home and told the cook that they
had seen nothing in the forest but a little rose-bush with one rose on
it. Then the old cook scolded and said: 'You simpletons, you should have
cut the rose-bush in two, and have broken off the rose and brought it
home with you; go, and do it at once.' They had therefore to go out and
look for the second time. The children, however, saw them coming from a
distance. Then Lina said: 'Fundevogel, never leave me, and I will never
leave you.' Fundevogel said: 'Neither now; nor ever.' Said Lina: 'Then
do you become a church, and I'll be the chandelier in it.' So when the
three servants came, nothing was there but a church, with a chandelier
in it. They said therefore to each other: 'What can we do here, let us
go home.' When they got home, the cook asked if they had not found them;
so they said no, they had found nothing but a church, and there was a
chandelier in it. And the cook scolded them and said: 'You fools! why
did you not pull the church to pieces, and bring the chandelier home
with you?' And now the old cook herself got on her legs, and went with
the three servants in pursuit of the children. The children, however,
saw from afar that the three servants were coming, and the cook waddling
after them. Then said Lina: 'Fundevogel, never leave me, and I will
never leave you.' Then said Fundevogel: 'Neither now, nor ever.' Said
Lina: 'Be a fishpond, and I will be the duck upon it.' The cook,
however, came up to them, and when she saw the pond she lay down by it,
and was about to drink it up. But the duck swam quickly to her, seized
her head in its beak and drew her into the water, and there the old
witch had to drown. Then the children went home together, and were
heartily delighted, and if they have not died, they are living still.
THE VALIANT LITTLE TAILOR
One summer's morning a little tailor was sitting
on his table by the window; he was in good spirits, and sewed with all
his might. Then came a peasant woman down the street crying: 'Good jams,
cheap! Good jams, cheap!' This rang pleasantly in the tailor's ears; he
stretched his delicate head out of the window, and called: 'Come up
here, dear woman; here you will get rid of your goods.' The woman came
up the three steps to the tailor with her heavy basket, and he made her
unpack all the pots for him. He inspected each one, lifted it up, put
his nose to it, and at length said: 'The jam seems to me to be good, so
weigh me out four ounces, dear woman, and if it is a quarter of a pound
that is of no consequence.' The woman who had hoped to find a good sale,
gave him what he desired, but went away quite angry and grumbling. 'Now,
this jam shall be blessed by God,' cried the little tailor, 'and give me
health and strength'; so he brought the bread out of the cupboard, cut
himself a piece right across the loaf and spread the jam over it. 'This
won't taste bitter,' said he, 'but I will just finish the jacket before
I take a bite.' He laid the bread near him, sewed on, and in his joy,
made bigger and bigger stitches. In the meantime the smell of the sweet
jam rose to where the flies were sitting in great numbers, and they were
attracted and descended on it in hosts. 'Hi! who invited you?' said the
little tailor, and drove the unbidden guests away. The flies, however,
who understood no German, would not be turned away, but came back again
in ever-increasing companies. The little tailor at last lost all
patience, and drew a piece of cloth from the hole under his work-table,
and saying: 'Wait, and I will give it to you,' struck it mercilessly on
them. When he drew it away and counted, there lay before him no fewer
than seven, dead and with legs stretched out. 'Are you a fellow of that
sort?' said he, and could not help admiring his own bravery. 'The whole
town shall know of this!' And the little tailor hastened to cut himself
a girdle, stitched it, and embroidered on it in large letters: 'Seven at
one stroke!' 'What, the town!' he continued, 'the whole world shall hear
of it!' and his heart wagged with joy like a lamb's tail. The tailor put
on the girdle, and resolved to go forth into the world, because he
thought his workshop was too small for his valour. Before he went away,
he sought about in the house to see if there was anything which he could
take with him; however, he found nothing but an old cheese, and that he
put in his pocket. In front of the door he observed a bird which had
caught itself in the thicket. It had to go into his pocket with the
cheese. Now he took to the road boldly, and as he was light and nimble,
he felt no fatigue. The road led him up a mountain, and when he had
reached the highest point of it, there sat a powerful giant looking
peacefully about him. The little tailor went bravely up, spoke to him,
and said: 'Good day, comrade, so you are sitting there overlooking the
wide-spread world! I am just on my way thither, and want to try my luck.
Have you any inclination to go with me?' The giant looked contemptuously
at the tailor, and said: 'You ragamuffin! You miserable creature!'
'Oh, indeed?' answered the little tailor, and
unbuttoned his coat, and showed the giant the girdle, 'there may you
read what kind of a man I am!' The giant read: 'Seven at one stroke,'
and thought that they had been men whom the tailor had killed, and began
to feel a little respect for the tiny fellow. Nevertheless, he wished to
try him first, and took a stone in his hand and squeezed it together so
that water dropped out of it. 'Do that likewise,' said the giant, 'if
you have strength.' 'Is that all?' said the tailor, 'that is child's
play with us!' and put his hand into his pocket, brought out the soft
cheese, and pressed it until the liquid ran out of it. 'Faith,' said he,
'that was a little better, wasn't it?' The giant did not know what to
say, and could not believe it of the little man. Then the giant picked
up a stone and threw it so high that the eye could scarcely follow it.
'Now, little mite of a man, do that likewise,' 'Well thrown,' said the
tailor, 'but after all the stone came down to earth again; I will throw
you one which shall never come back at all,' and he put his hand into
his pocket, took out the bird, and threw it into the air. The bird,
delighted with its liberty, rose, flew away and did not come back. 'How
does that shot please you, comrade?' asked the tailor. 'You can
certainly throw,' said the giant, 'but now we will see if you are able
to carry anything properly.' He took the little tailor to a mighty oak
tree which lay there felled on the ground, and said: 'If you are strong
enough, help me to carry the tree out of the forest.' 'Readily,'
answered the little man; 'take you the trunk on your shoulders, and I
will raise up the branches and twigs; after all, they are the heaviest.'
The giant took the trunk on his shoulder, but the tailor seated himself
on a branch, and the giant, who could not look round, had to carry away
the whole tree, and the little tailor into the bargain: he behind, was
quite merry and happy, and whistled the song: 'Three tailors rode forth
from the gate,' as if carrying the tree were child's play. The giant,
after he had dragged the heavy burden part of the way, could go no
further, and cried: 'Hark you, I shall have to let the tree fall!' The
tailor sprang nimbly down, seized the tree with both arms as if he had
been carrying it, and said to the giant: 'You are such a great fellow,
and yet cannot even carry the tree!'
They went on together, and as they passed a
cherry-tree, the giant laid hold of the top of the tree where the ripest
fruit was hanging, bent it down, gave it into the tailor's hand, and
bade him eat. But the little tailor was much too weak to hold the tree,
and when the giant let it go, it sprang back again, and the tailor was
tossed into the air with it. When he had fallen down again without
injury, the giant said: 'What is this? Have you not strength enough to
hold the weak twig?' 'There is no lack of strength,' answered the little
tailor. 'Do you think that could be anything to a man who has struck
down seven at one blow? I leapt over the tree because the huntsmen are
shooting down there in the thicket. Jump as I did, if you can do it.'
The giant made the attempt but he could not get over the tree, and
remained hanging in the branches, so that in this also the tailor kept
the upper hand.
The giant said: 'If you are such a valiant fellow,
come with me into our cavern and spend the night with us.' The little
tailor was willing, and followed him. When they went into the cave,
other giants were sitting there by the fire, and each of them had a
roasted sheep in his hand and was eating it. The little tailor looked
round and thought: 'It is much more spacious here than in my workshop.'
The giant showed him a bed, and said he was to lie down in it and sleep.
The bed, however, was too big for the little tailor; he did not lie down
in it, but crept into a corner. When it was midnight, and the giant
thought that the little tailor was lying in a sound sleep, he got up,
took a great iron bar, cut through the bed with one blow, and thought he
had finished off the grasshopper for good. With the earliest dawn the
giants went into the forest, and had quite forgotten the little tailor,
when all at once he walked up to them quite merrily and boldly. The
giants were terrified, they were afraid that he would strike them all
dead, and ran away in a great hurry.
The little tailor went onwards, always following
his own pointed nose. After he had walked for a long time, he came to
the courtyard of a royal palace, and as he felt weary, he lay down on
the grass and fell asleep. Whilst he lay there, the people came and
inspected him on all sides, and read on his girdle: 'Seven at one
stroke.' 'Ah!' said they, 'what does the great warrior want here in the
midst of peace? He must be a mighty lord.' They went and announced him
to the king, and gave it as their opinion that if war should break out,
this would be a weighty and useful man who ought on no account to be
allowed to depart. The counsel pleased the king, and he sent one of his
courtiers to the little tailor to offer him military service when he
awoke. The ambassador remained standing by the sleeper, waited until he
stretched his limbs and opened his eyes, and then conveyed to him this
proposal. 'For this very reason have I come here,' the tailor replied,
'I am ready to enter the king's service.' He was therefore honourably
received, and a special dwelling was assigned him.
The soldiers, however, were set against the little
tailor, and wished him a thousand miles away. 'What is to be the end of
this?' they said among themselves. 'If we quarrel with him, and he
strikes about him, seven of us will fall at every blow; not one of us
can stand against him.' They came therefore to a decision, betook
themselves in a body to the king, and begged for their dismissal. 'We
are not prepared,' said they, 'to stay with a man who kills seven at one
stroke.' The king was sorry that for the sake of one he should lose all
his faithful servants, wished that he had never set eyes on the tailor,
and would willingly have been rid of him again. But he did not venture
to give him his dismissal, for he dreaded lest he should strike him and
all his people dead, and place himself on the royal throne. He thought
about it for a long time, and at last found good counsel. He sent to the
little tailor and caused him to be informed that as he was a great
warrior, he had one request to make to him. In a forest of his country
lived two giants, who caused great mischief with their robbing,
murdering, ravaging, and burning, and no one could approach them without
putting himself in danger of death. If the tailor conquered and killed
these two giants, he would give him his only daughter to wife, and half
of his kingdom as a dowry, likewise one hundred horsemen should go with
him to assist him. 'That would indeed be a fine thing for a man like
me!' thought the little tailor. 'One is not offered a beautiful princess
and half a kingdom every day of one's life!' 'Oh, yes,' he replied, 'I
will soon subdue the giants, and do not require the help of the hundred
horsemen to do it; he who can hit seven with one blow has no need to be
afraid of two.'
The little tailor went forth, and the hundred
horsemen followed him. When he came to the outskirts of the forest, he
said to his followers: 'Just stay waiting here, I alone will soon finish
off the giants.' Then he bounded into the forest and looked about right
and left. After a while he perceived both giants. They lay sleeping
under a tree, and snored so that the branches waved up and down. The
little tailor, not idle, gathered two pocketsful of stones, and with
these climbed up the tree. When he was halfway up, he slipped down by a
branch, until he sat just above the sleepers, and then let one stone
after another fall on the breast of one of the giants. For a long time
the giant felt nothing, but at last he awoke, pushed his comrade, and
said: 'Why are you knocking me?' 'You must be dreaming,' said the other,
'I am not knocking you.' They laid themselves down to sleep again, and
then the tailor threw a stone down on the second. 'What is the meaning
of this?' cried the other 'Why are you pelting me?' 'I am not pelting
you,' answered the first, growling. They disputed about it for a time,
but as they were weary they let the matter rest, and their eyes closed
once more. The little tailor began his game again, picked out the
biggest stone, and threw it with all his might on the breast of the
first giant. 'That is too bad!' cried he, and sprang up like a madman,
and pushed his companion against the tree until it shook. The other paid
him back in the same coin, and they got into such a rage that they tore
up trees and belaboured each other so long, that at last they both fell
down dead on the ground at the same time. Then the little tailor leapt
down. 'It is a lucky thing,' said he, 'that they did not tear up the
tree on which I was sitting, or I should have had to sprint on to
another like a squirrel; but we tailors are nimble.' He drew out his
sword and gave each of them a couple of thrusts in the breast, and then
went out to the horsemen and said: 'The work is done; I have finished
both of them off, but it was hard work! They tore up trees in their sore
need, and defended themselves with them, but all that is to no purpose
when a man like myself comes, who can kill seven at one blow.' 'But are
you not wounded?' asked the horsemen. 'You need not concern yourself
about that,' answered the tailor, 'they have not bent one hair of mine.'
The horsemen would not believe him, and rode into the forest; there they
found the giants swimming in their blood, and all round about lay the
torn-up trees.
The little tailor demanded of the king the
promised reward; he, however, repented of his promise, and again
bethought himself how he could get rid of the hero. 'Before you receive
my daughter, and the half of my kingdom,' said he to him, 'you must
perform one more heroic deed. In the forest roams a unicorn which does
great harm, and you must catch it first.' 'I fear one unicorn still less
than two giants. Seven at one blow, is my kind of affair.' He took a
rope and an axe with him, went forth into the forest, and again bade
those who were sent with him to wait outside. He had not long to seek.
The unicorn soon came towards him, and rushed directly on the tailor, as
if it would gore him with its horn without more ado. 'Softly, softly; it
can't be done as quickly as that,' said he, and stood still and waited
until the animal was quite close, and then sprang nimbly behind the
tree. The unicorn ran against the tree with all its strength, and stuck
its horn so fast in the trunk that it had not the strength enough to
draw it out again, and thus it was caught. 'Now, I have got the bird,'
said the tailor, and came out from behind the tree and put the rope
round its neck, and then with his axe he hewed the horn out of the tree,
and when all was ready he led the beast away and took it to the king.
The king still would not give him the promised
reward, and made a third demand. Before the wedding the tailor was to
catch him a wild boar that made great havoc in the forest, and the
huntsmen should give him their help. 'Willingly,' said the tailor, 'that
is child's play!' He did not take the huntsmen with him into the forest,
and they were well pleased that he did not, for the wild boar had
several times received them in such a manner that they had no
inclination to lie in wait for him. When the boar perceived the tailor,
it ran on him with foaming mouth and whetted tusks, and was about to
throw him to the ground, but the hero fled and sprang into a chapel
which was near and up to the window at once, and in one bound out again.
The boar ran after him, but the tailor ran round outside and shut the
door behind it, and then the raging beast, which was much too heavy and
awkward to leap out of the window, was caught. The little tailor called
the huntsmen thither that they might see the prisoner with their own
eyes. The hero, however, went to the king, who was now, whether he liked
it or not, obliged to keep his promise, and gave his daughter and the
half of his kingdom. Had he known that it was no warlike hero, but a
little tailor who was standing before him, it would have gone to his
heart still more than it did. The wedding was held with great
magnificence and small joy, and out of a tailor a king was made.
After some time the young queen heard her husband
say in his dreams at night: 'Boy, make me the doublet, and patch the
pantaloons, or else I will rap the yard-measure over your ears.' Then
she discovered in what state of life the young lord had been born, and
next morning complained of her wrongs to her father, and begged him to
help her to get rid of her husband, who was nothing else but a tailor.
The king comforted her and said: 'Leave your bedroom door open this
night, and my servants shall stand outside, and when he has fallen
asleep shall go in, bind him, and take him on board a ship which shall
carry him into the wide world.' The woman was satisfied with this; but
the king's armour-bearer, who had heard all, was friendly with the young
lord, and informed him of the whole plot. 'I'll put a screw into that
business,' said the little tailor. At night he went to bed with his wife
at the usual time, and when she thought that he had fallen asleep, she
got up, opened the door, and then lay down again. The little tailor, who
was only pretending to be asleep, began to cry out in a clear voice:
'Boy, make me the doublet and patch me the pantaloons, or I will rap the
yard-measure over your ears. I smote seven at one blow. I killed two
giants, I brought away one unicorn, and caught a wild boar, and am I to
fear those who are standing outside the room.' When these men heard the
tailor speaking thus, they were overcome by a great dread, and ran as if
the wild huntsman were behind them, and none of them would venture
anything further against him. So the little tailor was and remained a
king to the end of his life.
HANSEL AND GRETEL
Hard by a great forest dwelt a poor wood-cutter
with his wife and his two children. The boy was called Hansel and the
girl Gretel. He had little to bite and to break, and once when great
dearth fell on the land, he could no longer procure even daily bread.
Now when he thought over this by night in his bed, and tossed about in
his anxiety, he groaned and said to his wife: 'What is to become of us?
How are we to feed our poor children, when we no longer have anything
even for ourselves?' 'I'll tell you what, husband,' answered the woman,
'early tomorrow morning we will take the children out into the forest to
where it is the thickest; there we will light a fire for them, and give
each of them one more piece of bread, and then we will go to our work
and leave them alone. They will not find the way home again, and we
shall be rid of them.' 'No, wife,' said the man, 'I will not do that;
how can I bear to leave my children alone in the forest?--the wild
animals would soon come and tear them to pieces.' 'O, you fool!' said
she, 'then we must all four die of hunger, you may as well plane the
planks for our coffins,' and she left him no peace until he consented.
'But I feel very sorry for the poor children, all the same,' said the
man.
The two children had also not been able to sleep
for hunger, and had heard what their stepmother had said to their
father. Gretel wept bitter tears, and said to Hansel: 'Now all is over
with us.' 'Be quiet, Gretel,' said Hansel, 'do not distress yourself, I
will soon find a way to help us.' And when the old folks had fallen
asleep, he got up, put on his little coat, opened the door below, and
crept outside. The moon shone brightly, and the white pebbles which lay
in front of the house glittered like real silver pennies. Hansel stooped
and stuffed the little pocket of his coat with as many as he could get
in. Then he went back and said to Gretel: 'Be comforted, dear little
sister, and sleep in peace, God will not forsake us,' and he lay down
again in his bed. When day dawned, but before the sun had risen, the
woman came and awoke the two children, saying: 'Get up, you sluggards!
we are going into the forest to fetch wood.' She gave each a little
piece of bread, and said: 'There is something for your dinner, but do
not eat it up before then, for you will get nothing else.' Gretel took
the bread under her apron, as Hansel had the pebbles in his pocket. Then
they all set out together on the way to the forest. When they had walked
a short time, Hansel stood still and peeped back at the house, and did
so again and again. His father said: 'Hansel, what are you looking at
there and staying behind for? Pay attention, and do not forget how to
use your legs.' 'Ah, father,' said Hansel, 'I am looking at my little
white cat, which is sitting up on the roof, and wants to say goodbye to
me.' The wife said: 'Fool, that is not your little cat, that is the
morning sun which is shining on the chimneys.' Hansel, however, had not
been looking back at the cat, but had been constantly throwing one of
the white pebble-stones out of his pocket on the road.
When they had reached the middle of the forest,
the father said: 'Now, children, pile up some wood, and I will light a
fire that you may not be cold.' Hansel and Gretel gathered brushwood
together, as high as a little hill. The brushwood was lighted, and when
the flames were burning very high, the woman said: 'Now, children, lay
yourselves down by the fire and rest, we will go into the forest and cut
some wood. When we have done, we will come back and fetch you away.'
Hansel and Gretel sat by the fire, and when noon
came, each ate a little piece of bread, and as they heard the strokes of
the wood-axe they believed that their father was near. It was not the
axe, however, but a branch which he had fastened to a withered tree
which the wind was blowing backwards and forwards. And as they had been
sitting such a long time, their eyes closed with fatigue, and they fell
fast asleep. When at last they awoke, it was already dark night. Gretel
began to cry and said: 'How are we to get out of the forest now?' But
Hansel comforted her and said: 'Just wait a little, until the moon has
risen, and then we will soon find the way.' And when the full moon had
risen, Hansel took his little sister by the hand, and followed the
pebbles which shone like newly-coined silver pieces, and showed them the
way.
They walked the whole night long, and by break of
day came once more to their father's house. They knocked at the door,
and when the woman opened it and saw that it was Hansel and Gretel, she
said: 'You naughty children, why have you slept so long in the
forest?--we thought you were never coming back at all!' The father,
however, rejoiced, for it had cut him to the heart to leave them behind
alone.
Not long afterwards, there was once more great
dearth throughout the land, and the children heard their mother saying
at night to their father: 'Everything is eaten again, we have one half
loaf left, and that is the end. The children must go, we will take them
farther into the wood, so that they will not find their way out again;
there is no other means of saving ourselves!' The man's heart was heavy,
and he thought: 'It would be better for you to share the last mouthful
with your children.' The woman, however, would listen to nothing that he
had to say, but scolded and reproached him. He who says A must say B,
likewise, and as he had yielded the first time, he had to do so a second
time also.
The children, however, were still awake and had
heard the conversation. When the old folks were asleep, Hansel again got
up, and wanted to go out and pick up pebbles as he had done before, but
the woman had locked the door, and Hansel could not get out.
Nevertheless he comforted his little sister, and said: 'Do not cry,
Gretel, go to sleep quietly, the good God will help us.'
Early in the morning came the woman, and took the
children out of their beds. Their piece of bread was given to them, but
it was still smaller than the time before. On the way into the forest
Hansel crumbled his in his pocket, and often stood still and threw a
morsel on the ground. 'Hansel, why do you stop and look round?' said the
father, 'go on.' 'I am looking back at my little pigeon which is sitting
on the roof, and wants to say goodbye to me,' answered Hansel. 'Fool!'
said the woman, 'that is not your little pigeon, that is the morning sun
that is shining on the chimney.' Hansel, however little by little, threw
all the crumbs on the path.
The woman led the children still deeper into the
forest, where they had never in their lives been before. Then a great
fire was again made, and the mother said: 'Just sit there, you children,
and when you are tired you may sleep a little; we are going into the
forest to cut wood, and in the evening when we are done, we will come
and fetch you away.' When it was noon, Gretel shared her piece of bread
with Hansel, who had scattered his by the way. Then they fell asleep and
evening passed, but no one came to the poor children. They did not awake
until it was dark night, and Hansel comforted his little sister and
said: 'Just wait, Gretel, until the moon rises, and then we shall see
the crumbs of bread which I have strewn about, they will show us our way
home again.' When the moon came they set out, but they found no crumbs,
for the many thousands of birds which fly about in the woods and fields
had picked them all up. Hansel said to Gretel: 'We shall soon find the
way,' but they did not find it. They walked the whole night and all the
next day too from morning till evening, but they did not get out of the
forest, and were very hungry, for they had nothing to eat but two or
three berries, which grew on the ground. And as they were so weary that
their legs would carry them no longer, they lay down beneath a tree and
fell asleep.
It was now three mornings since they had left
their father's house. They began to walk again, but they always came
deeper into the forest, and if help did not come soon, they must die of
hunger and weariness. When it was mid-day, they saw a beautiful
snow-white bird sitting on a bough, which sang so delightfully that they
stood still and listened to it. And when its song was over, it spread
its wings and flew away before them, and they followed it until they
reached a little house, on the roof of which it alighted; and when they
approached the little house they saw that it was built of bread and
covered with cakes, but that the windows were of clear sugar. 'We will
set to work on that,' said Hansel, 'and have a good meal. I will eat a
bit of the roof, and you Gretel, can eat some of the window, it will
taste sweet.' Hansel reached up above, and broke off a little of the
roof to try how it tasted, and Gretel leant against the window and
nibbled at the panes. Then a soft voice cried from the parlour:
'Nibble, nibble, gnaw, Who is nibbling at my
little house?'
The children answered:
'The wind, the wind, The heaven-born wind,'
and went on eating without disturbing themselves.
Hansel, who liked the taste of the roof, tore down a great piece of it,
and Gretel pushed out the whole of one round window-pane, sat down, and
enjoyed herself with it. Suddenly the door opened, and a woman as old as
the hills, who supported herself on crutches, came creeping out. Hansel
and Gretel were so terribly frightened that they let fall what they had
in their hands. The old woman, however, nodded her head, and said: 'Oh,
you dear children, who has brought you here? do come in, and stay with
me. No harm shall happen to you.' She took them both by the hand, and
led them into her little house. Then good food was set before them, milk
and pancakes, with sugar, apples, and nuts. Afterwards two pretty little
beds were covered with clean white linen, and Hansel and Gretel lay down
in them, and thought they were in heaven.
The old woman had only pretended to be so kind;
she was in reality a wicked witch, who lay in wait for children, and had
only built the little house of bread in order to entice them there. When
a child fell into her power, she killed it, cooked and ate it, and that
was a feast day with her. Witches have red eyes, and cannot see far, but
they have a keen scent like the beasts, and are aware when human beings
draw near. When Hansel and Gretel came into her neighbourhood, she
laughed with malice, and said mockingly: 'I have them, they shall not
escape me again!' Early in the morning before the children were awake,
she was already up, and when she saw both of them sleeping and looking
so pretty, with their plump and rosy cheeks she muttered to herself:
'That will be a dainty mouthful!' Then she seized Hansel with her
shrivelled hand, carried him into a little stable, and locked him in
behind a grated door. Scream as he might, it would not help him. Then
she went to Gretel, shook her till she awoke, and cried: 'Get up, lazy
thing, fetch some water, and cook something good for your brother, he is
in the stable outside, and is to be made fat. When he is fat, I will eat
him.' Gretel began to weep bitterly, but it was all in vain, for she was
forced to do what the wicked witch commanded.
And now the best food was cooked for poor Hansel,
but Gretel got nothing but crab-shells. Every morning the woman crept to
the little stable, and cried: 'Hansel, stretch out your finger that I
may feel if you will soon be fat.' Hansel, however, stretched out a
little bone to her, and the old woman, who had dim eyes, could not see
it, and thought it was Hansel's finger, and was astonished that there
was no way of fattening him. When four weeks had gone by, and Hansel
still remained thin, she was seized with impatience and would not wait
any longer. 'Now, then, Gretel,' she cried to the girl, 'stir yourself,
and bring some water. Let Hansel be fat or lean, tomorrow I will kill
him, and cook him.' Ah, how the poor little sister did lament when she
had to fetch the water, and how her tears did flow down her cheeks!
'Dear God, do help us,' she cried. 'If the wild beasts in the forest had
but devoured us, we should at any rate have died together.' 'Just keep
your noise to yourself,' said the old woman, 'it won't help you at all.'
Early in the morning, Gretel had to go out and
hang up the cauldron with the water, and light the fire. 'We will bake
first,' said the old woman, 'I have already heated the oven, and kneaded
the dough.' She pushed poor Gretel out to the oven, from which flames of
fire were already darting. 'Creep in,' said the witch, 'and see if it is
properly heated, so that we can put the bread in.' And once Gretel was
inside, she intended to shut the oven and let her bake in it, and then
she would eat her, too. But Gretel saw what she had in mind, and said:
'I do not know how I am to do it; how do I get in?' 'Silly goose,' said
the old woman. 'The door is big enough; just look, I can get in myself!'
and she crept up and thrust her head into the oven. Then Gretel gave her
a push that drove her far into it, and shut the iron door, and fastened
the bolt. Oh! then she began to howl quite horribly, but Gretel ran away
and the godless witch was miserably burnt to death.
Gretel, however, ran like lightning to Hansel,
opened his little stable, and cried: 'Hansel, we are saved! The old
witch is dead!' Then Hansel sprang like a bird from its cage when the
door is opened. How they did rejoice and embrace each other, and dance
about and kiss each other! And as they had no longer any need to fear
her, they went into the witch's house, and in every corner there stood
chests full of pearls and jewels. 'These are far better than pebbles!'
said Hansel, and thrust into his pockets whatever could be got in, and
Gretel said: 'I, too, will take something home with me,' and filled her
pinafore full. 'But now we must be off,' said Hansel, 'that we may get
out of the witch's forest.'
When they had walked for two hours, they came to a
great stretch of water. 'We cannot cross,' said Hansel, 'I see no
foot-plank, and no bridge.' 'And there is also no ferry,' answered
Gretel, 'but a white duck is swimming there: if I ask her, she will help
us over.' Then she cried:
'Little duck, little duck, dost thou see, Hansel
and Gretel are waiting for thee? There's never a plank, or bridge in
sight, Take us across on thy back so white.'
The duck came to them, and Hansel seated himself
on its back, and told his sister to sit by him. 'No,' replied Gretel,
'that will be too heavy for the little duck; she shall take us across,
one after the other.' The good little duck did so, and when they were
once safely across and had walked for a short time, the forest seemed to
be more and more familiar to them, and at length they saw from afar
their father's house. Then they began to run, rushed into the parlour,
and threw themselves round their father's neck. The man had not known
one happy hour since he had left the children in the forest; the woman,
however, was dead. Gretel emptied her pinafore until pearls and precious
stones ran about the room, and Hansel threw one handful after another
out of his pocket to add to them. Then all anxiety was at an end, and
they lived together in perfect happiness. My tale is done, there runs a
mouse; whosoever catches it, may make himself a big fur cap out of it.
THE MOUSE, THE BIRD, AND THE SAUSAGE
Once upon a time, a mouse, a bird, and a sausage,
entered into partnership and set up house together. For a long time all
went well; they lived in great comfort, and prospered so far as to be
able to add considerably to their stores. The bird's duty was to fly
daily into the wood and bring in fuel; the mouse fetched the water, and
the sausage saw to the cooking.
When people are too well off they always begin to
long for something new. And so it came to pass, that the bird, while out
one day, met a fellow bird, to whom he boastfully expatiated on the
excellence of his household arrangements. But the other bird sneered at
him for being a poor simpleton, who did all the hard work, while the
other two stayed at home and had a good time of it. For, when the mouse
had made the fire and fetched in the water, she could retire into her
little room and rest until it was time to set the table. The sausage had
only to watch the pot to see that the food was properly cooked, and when
it was near dinner-time, he just threw himself into the broth, or rolled
in and out among the vegetables three or four times, and there they
were, buttered, and salted, and ready to be served. Then, when the bird
came home and had laid aside his burden, they sat down to table, and
when they had finished their meal, they could sleep their fill till the
following morning: and that was really a very delightful life.
Influenced by those remarks, the bird next morning
refused to bring in the wood, telling the others that he had been their
servant long enough, and had been a fool into the bargain, and that it
was now time to make a change, and to try some other way of arranging
the work. Beg and pray as the mouse and the sausage might, it was of no
use; the bird remained master of the situation, and the venture had to
be made. They therefore drew lots, and it fell to the sausage to bring
in the wood, to the mouse to cook, and to the bird to fetch the water.
And now what happened? The sausage started in
search of wood, the bird made the fire, and the mouse put on the pot,
and then these two waited till the sausage returned with the fuel for
the following day. But the sausage remained so long away, that they
became uneasy, and the bird flew out to meet him. He had not flown far,
however, when he came across a dog who, having met the sausage, had
regarded him as his legitimate booty, and so seized and swallowed him.
The bird complained to the dog of this bare-faced robbery, but nothing
he said was of any avail, for the dog answered that he found false
credentials on the sausage, and that was the reason his life had been
forfeited.
He picked up the wood, and flew sadly home, and
told the mouse all he had seen and heard. They were both very unhappy,
but agreed to make the best of things and to remain with one another.
So now the bird set the table, and the mouse
looked after the food and, wishing to prepare it in the same way as the
sausage, by rolling in and out among the vegetables to salt and butter
them, she jumped into the pot; but she stopped short long before she
reached the bottom, having already parted not only with her skin and
hair, but also with life.
Presently the bird came in and wanted to serve up
the dinner, but he could nowhere see the cook. In his alarm and flurry,
he threw the wood here and there about the floor, called and searched,
but no cook was to be found. Then some of the wood that had been
carelessly thrown down, caught fire and began to blaze. The bird
hastened to fetch some water, but his pail fell into the well, and he
after it, and as he was unable to recover himself, he was drowned.
MOTHER HOLLE
Once upon a time there was a widow who had two
daughters; one of them was beautiful and industrious, the other ugly and
lazy. The mother, however, loved the ugly and lazy one best, because she
was her own daughter, and so the other, who was only her stepdaughter,
was made to do all the work of the house, and was quite the Cinderella
of the family. Her stepmother sent her out every day to sit by the well
in the high road, there to spin until she made her fingers bleed. Now it
chanced one day that some blood fell on to the spindle, and as the girl
stopped over the well to wash it off, the spindle suddenly sprang out of
her hand and fell into the well. She ran home crying to tell of her
misfortune, but her stepmother spoke harshly to her, and after giving
her a violent scolding, said unkindly, 'As you have let the spindle fall
into the well you may go yourself and fetch it out.'
The girl went back to the well not knowing what to
do, and at last in her distress she jumped into the water after the
spindle.
She remembered nothing more until she awoke and
found herself in a beautiful meadow, full of sunshine, and with
countless flowers blooming in every direction.
She walked over the meadow, and presently she came
upon a baker's oven full of bread, and the loaves cried out to her,
'Take us out, take us out, or alas! we shall be burnt to a cinder; we
were baked through long ago.' So she took the bread-shovel and drew them
all out.
She went on a little farther, till she came to a
free full of apples. 'Shake me, shake me, I pray,' cried the tree; 'my
apples, one and all, are ripe.' So she shook the tree, and the apples
came falling down upon her like rain; but she continued shaking until
there was not a single apple left upon it. Then she carefully gathered
the apples together in a heap and walked on again.
The next thing she came to was a little house, and
there she saw an old woman looking out, with such large teeth, that she
was terrified, and turned to run away. But the old woman called after
her, 'What are you afraid of, dear child? Stay with me; if you will do
the work of my house properly for me, I will make you very happy. You
must be very careful, however, to make my bed in the right way, for I
wish you always to shake it thoroughly, so that the feathers fly about;
then they say, down there in the world, that it is snowing; for I am
Mother Holle.' The old woman spoke so kindly, that the girl summoned up
courage and agreed to enter into her service.
She took care to do everything according to the
old woman's bidding and every time she made the bed she shook it with
all her might, so that the feathers flew about like so many snowflakes.
The old woman was as good as her word: she never spoke angrily to her,
and gave her roast and boiled meats every day.
So she stayed on with Mother Holle for some time,
and then she began to grow unhappy. She could not at first tell why she
felt sad, but she became conscious at last of great longing to go home;
then she knew she was homesick, although she was a thousand times better
off with Mother Holle than with her mother and sister. After waiting
awhile, she went to Mother Holle and said, 'I am so homesick, that I
cannot stay with you any longer, for although I am so happy here, I must
return to my own people.'
Then Mother Holle said, 'I am pleased that you
should want to go back to your own people, and as you have served me so
well and faithfully, I will take you home myself.'
Thereupon she led the girl by the hand up to a
broad gateway. The gate was opened, and as the girl passed through, a
shower of gold fell upon her, and the gold clung to her, so that she was
covered with it from head to foot.
'That is a reward for your industry,' said Mother
Holle, and as she spoke she handed her the spindle which she had dropped
into the well.
The gate was then closed, and the girl found
herself back in the old world close to her mother's house. As she
entered the courtyard, the cock who was perched on the well, called out:
'Cock-a-doodle-doo! Your golden daughter's come
back to you.'
Then she went in to her mother and sister, and as
she was so richly covered with gold, they gave her a warm welcome. She
related to them all that had happened, and when the mother heard how she
had come by her great riches, she thought she should like her ugly, lazy
daughter to go and try her fortune. So she made the sister go and sit by
the well and spin, and the girl pricked her finger and thrust her hand
into a thorn-bush, so that she might drop some blood on to the spindle;
then she threw it into the well, and jumped in herself.
Like her sister she awoke in the beautiful meadow,
and walked over it till she came to the oven. 'Take us out, take us out,
or alas! we shall be burnt to a cinder; we were baked through long ago,'
cried the loaves as before. But the lazy girl answered, 'Do you think I
am going to dirty my hands for you?' and walked on.
Presently she came to the apple-tree. 'Shake me,
shake me, I pray; my apples, one and all, are ripe,' it cried. But she
only answered, 'A nice thing to ask me to do, one of the apples might
fall on my head,' and passed on.
At last she came to Mother Holle's house, and as
she had heard all about the large teeth from her sister, she was not
afraid of them, and engaged herself without delay to the old woman.
The first day she was very obedient and
industrious, and exerted herself to please Mother Holle, for she thought
of the gold she should get in return. The next day, however, she began
to dawdle over her work, and the third day she was more idle still; then
she began to lie in bed in the mornings and refused to get up. Worse
still, she neglected to make the old woman's bed properly, and forgot to
shake it so that the feathers might fly about. So Mother Holle very soon
got tired of her, and told her she might go. The lazy girl was delighted
at this, and thought to herself, 'The gold will soon be mine.' Mother
Holle led her, as she had led her sister, to the broad gateway; but as
she was passing through, instead of the shower of gold, a great
bucketful of pitch came pouring over her.
'That is in return for your services,' said the
old woman, and she shut the gate.
So the lazy girl had to go home covered with
pitch, and the cock on the well called out as she saw her:
'Cock-a-doodle-doo! Your dirty daughter's come
back to you.'
But, try what she would, she could not get the
pitch off and it stuck to her as long as she lived.
LITTLE RED-CAP [LITTLE RED RIDING HOOD]
Once upon a time there was a dear little girl who
was loved by everyone who looked at her, but most of all by her
grandmother, and there was nothing that she would not have given to the
child. Once she gave her a little cap of red velvet, which suited her so
well that she would never wear anything else; so she was always called
'Little Red- Cap.'
One day her mother said to her: 'Come, Little
Red-Cap, here is a piece of cake and a bottle of wine; take them to your
grandmother, she is ill and weak, and they will do her good. Set out
before it gets hot, and when you are going, walk nicely and quietly and
do not run off the path, or you may fall and break the bottle, and then
your grandmother will get nothing; and when you go into her room, don't
forget to say, "Good morning", and don't peep into every
corner before you do it.'
'I will take great care,' said Little Red-Cap to
her mother, and gave her hand on it.
The grandmother lived out in the wood, half a
league from the village, and just as Little Red-Cap entered the wood, a
wolf met her. Red-Cap did not know what a wicked creature he was, and
was not at all afraid of him.
'Good day, Little Red-Cap,' said he.
'Thank you kindly, wolf.'
'Whither away so early, Little Red-Cap?'
'To my grandmother's.'
'What have you got in your apron?'
'Cake and wine; yesterday was baking-day, so poor
sick grandmother is to have something good, to make her stronger.'
'Where does your grandmother live, Little
Red-Cap?'
'A good quarter of a league farther on in the
wood; her house stands under the three large oak-trees, the nut-trees
are just below; you surely must know it,' replied Little Red-Cap.
The wolf thought to himself: 'What a tender young
creature! what a nice plump mouthful--she will be better to eat than the
old woman. I must act craftily, so as to catch both.' So he walked for a
short time by the side of Little Red-Cap, and then he said: 'See, Little
Red-Cap, how pretty the flowers are about here--why do you not look
round? I believe, too, that you do not hear how sweetly the little birds
are singing; you walk gravely along as if you were going to school,
while everything else out here in the wood is merry.'
Little Red-Cap raised her eyes, and when she saw
the sunbeams dancing here and there through the trees, and pretty
flowers growing everywhere, she thought: 'Suppose I take grandmother a
fresh nosegay; that would please her too. It is so early in the day that
I shall still get there in good time'; and so she ran from the path into
the wood to look for flowers. And whenever she had picked one, she
fancied that she saw a still prettier one farther on, and ran after it,
and so got deeper and deeper into the wood.
Meanwhile the wolf ran straight to the
grandmother's house and knocked at the door.
'Who is there?'
'Little Red-Cap,' replied the wolf. 'She is
bringing cake and wine; open the door.'
'Lift the latch,' called out the grandmother, 'I
am too weak, and cannot get up.'
The wolf lifted the latch, the door sprang open,
and without saying a word he went straight to the grandmother's bed, and
devoured her. Then he put on her clothes, dressed himself in her cap
laid himself in bed and drew the curtains.
Little Red-Cap, however, had been running about
picking flowers, and when she had gathered so many that she could carry
no more, she remembered her grandmother, and set out on the way to her.
She was surprised to find the cottage-door
standing open, and when she went into the room, she had such a strange
feeling that she said to herself: 'Oh dear! how uneasy I feel today, and
at other times I like being with grandmother so much.' She called out:
'Good morning,' but received no answer; so she went to the bed and drew
back the curtains. There lay her grandmother with her cap pulled far
over her face, and looking very strange.
'Oh! grandmother,' she said, 'what big ears you
have!'
'The better to hear you with, my child,' was the
reply.
'But, grandmother, what big eyes you have!' she
said.
'The better to see you with, my dear.'
'But, grandmother, what large hands you have!'
'The better to hug you with.'
'Oh! but, grandmother, what a terrible big mouth
you have!'
'The better to eat you with!'
And scarcely had the wolf said this, than with one
bound he was out of bed and swallowed up Red-Cap.
When the wolf had appeased his appetite, he lay
down again in the bed, fell asleep and began to snore very loud. The
huntsman was just passing the house, and thought to himself: 'How the
old woman is snoring! I must just see if she wants anything.' So he went
into the room, and when he came to the bed, he saw that the wolf was
lying in it. 'Do I find you here, you old sinner!' said he. 'I have long
sought you!' Then just as he was going to fire at him, it occurred to
him that the wolf might have devoured the grandmother, and that she
might still be saved, so he did not fire, but took a pair of scissors,
and began to cut open the stomach of the sleeping wolf. When he had made
two snips, he saw the little Red-Cap shining, and then he made two snips
more, and the little girl sprang out, crying: 'Ah, how frightened I have
been! How dark it was inside the wolf'; and after that the aged
grandmother came out alive also, but scarcely able to breathe. Red-Cap,
however, quickly fetched great stones with which they filled the wolf's
belly, and when he awoke, he wanted to run away, but the stones were so
heavy that he collapsed at once, and fell dead.
Then all three were delighted. The huntsman drew
off the wolf's skin and went home with it; the grandmother ate the cake
and drank the wine which Red-Cap had brought, and revived, but Red-Cap
thought to herself: 'As long as I live, I will never by myself leave the
path, to run into the wood, when my mother has forbidden me to do so.'
It also related that once when Red-Cap was again
taking cakes to the old grandmother, another wolf spoke to her, and
tried to entice her from the path. Red-Cap, however, was on her guard,
and went straight forward on her way, and told her grandmother that she
had met the wolf, and that he had said 'good morning' to her, but with
such a wicked look in his eyes, that if they had not been on the public
road she was certain he would have eaten her up. 'Well,' said the
grandmother, 'we will shut the door, that he may not come in.' Soon
afterwards the wolf knocked, and cried: 'Open the door, grandmother, I
am Little Red-Cap, and am bringing you some cakes.' But they did not
speak, or open the door, so the grey-beard stole twice or thrice round
the house, and at last jumped on the roof, intending to wait until
Red-Cap went home in the evening, and then to steal after her and devour
her in the darkness. But the grandmother saw what was in his thoughts.
In front of the house was a great stone trough, so she said to the
child: 'Take the pail, Red-Cap; I made some sausages yesterday, so carry
the water in which I boiled them to the trough.' Red-Cap carried until
the great trough was quite full. Then the smell of the sausages reached
the wolf, and he sniffed and peeped down, and at last stretched out his
neck so far that he could no longer keep his footing and began to slip,
and slipped down from the roof straight into the great trough, and was
drowned. But Red-Cap went joyously home, and no one ever did anything to
harm her again.
THE ROBBER BRIDEGROOM
There was once a miller who had one beautiful
daughter, and as she was grown up, he was anxious that she should be
well married and provided for. He said to himself, 'I will give her to
the first suitable man who comes and asks for her hand.' Not long after
a suitor appeared, and as he appeared to be very rich and the miller
could see nothing in him with which to find fault, he betrothed his
daughter to him. But the girl did not care for the man as a girl ought
to care for her betrothed husband. She did not feel that she could trust
him, and she could not look at him nor think of him without an inward
shudder. One day he said to her, 'You have not yet paid me a visit,
although we have been betrothed for some time.' 'I do not know where
your house is,' she answered. 'My house is out there in the dark
forest,' he said. She tried to excuse herself by saying that she would
not be able to find the way thither. Her betrothed only replied, 'You
must come and see me next Sunday; I have already invited guests for that
day, and that you may not mistake the way, I will strew ashes along the
path.'
When Sunday came, and it was time for the girl to
start, a feeling of dread came over her which she could not explain, and
that she might be able to find her path again, she filled her pockets
with peas and lentils to sprinkle on the ground as she went along. On
reaching the entrance to the forest she found the path strewed with
ashes, and these she followed, throwing down some peas on either side of
her at every step she took. She walked the whole day until she came to
the deepest, darkest part of the forest. There she saw a lonely house,
looking so grim and mysterious, that it did not please her at all. She
stepped inside, but not a soul was to be seen, and a great silence
reigned throughout. Suddenly a voice cried:
'Turn back, turn back, young maiden fair, Linger
not in this murderers' lair.'
The girl looked up and saw that the voice came
from a bird hanging in a cage on the wall. Again it cried:
'Turn back, turn back, young maiden fair, Linger
not in this murderers' lair.'
The girl passed on, going from room to room of the
house, but they were all empty, and still she saw no one. At last she
came to the cellar, and there sat a very, very old woman, who could not
keep her head from shaking. 'Can you tell me,' asked the girl, 'if my
betrothed husband lives here?'
'Ah, you poor child,' answered the old woman,
'what a place for you to come to! This is a murderers' den. You think
yourself a promised bride, and that your marriage will soon take place,
but it is with death that you will keep your marriage feast. Look, do
you see that large cauldron of water which I am obliged to keep on the
fire! As soon as they have you in their power they will kill you without
mercy, and cook and eat you, for they are eaters of men. If I did not
take pity on you and save you, you would be lost.'
Thereupon the old woman led her behind a large
cask, which quite hid her from view. 'Keep as still as a mouse,' she
said; 'do not move or speak, or it will be all over with you. Tonight,
when the robbers are all asleep, we will flee together. I have long been
waiting for an opportunity to escape.'
The words were hardly out of her mouth when the
godless crew returned, dragging another young girl along with them. They
were all drunk, and paid no heed to her cries and lamentations. They
gave her wine to drink, three glasses full, one of white wine, one of
red, and one of yellow, and with that her heart gave way and she died.
Then they tore of her dainty clothing, laid her on a table, and cut her
beautiful body into pieces, and sprinkled salt upon it.
The poor betrothed girl crouched trembling and
shuddering behind the cask, for she saw what a terrible fate had been
intended for her by the robbers. One of them now noticed a gold ring
still remaining on the little finger of the murdered girl, and as he
could not draw it off easily, he took a hatchet and cut off the finger;
but the finger sprang into the air, and fell behind the cask into the
lap of the girl who was hiding there. The robber took a light and began
looking for it, but he could not find it. 'Have you looked behind the
large cask?' said one of the others. But the old woman called out, 'Come
and eat your suppers, and let the thing be till tomorrow; the finger
won't run away.'
'The old woman is right,' said the robbers, and
they ceased looking for the finger and sat down.
The old woman then mixed a sleeping draught with
their wine, and before long they were all lying on the floor of the
cellar, fast asleep and snoring. As soon as the girl was assured of
this, she came from behind the cask. She was obliged to step over the
bodies of the sleepers, who were lying close together, and every moment
she was filled with renewed dread lest she should awaken them. But God
helped her, so that she passed safely over them, and then she and the
old woman went upstairs, opened the door, and hastened as fast as they
could from the murderers' den. They found the ashes scattered by the
wind, but the peas and lentils had sprouted, and grown sufficiently
above the ground, to guide them in the moonlight along the path. All
night long they walked, and it was morning before they reached the mill.
Then the girl told her father all that had happened.
The day came that had been fixed for the marriage.
The bridegroom arrived and also a large company of guests, for the
miller had taken care to invite all his friends and relations. As they
sat at the feast, each guest in turn was asked to tell a tale; the bride
sat still and did not say a word.
'And you, my love,' said the bridegroom, turning
to her, 'is there no tale you know? Tell us something.'
'I will tell you a dream, then,' said the bride.
'I went alone through a forest and came at last to a house; not a soul
could I find within, but a bird that was hanging in a cage on the wall
cried:
'Turn back, turn back, young maiden fair, Linger
not in this murderers' lair.'
and again a second time it said these words.'
'My darling, this is only a dream.'
'I went on through the house from room to room,
but they were all empty, and everything was so grim and mysterious. At
last I went down to the cellar, and there sat a very, very old woman,
who could not keep her head still. I asked her if my betrothed lived
here, and she answered, "Ah, you poor child, you are come to a
murderers' den; your betrothed does indeed live here, but he will kill
you without mercy and afterwards cook and eat you."'
'My darling, this is only a dream.'
'The old woman hid me behind a large cask, and
scarcely had she done this when the robbers returned home, dragging a
young girl along with them. They gave her three kinds of wine to drink,
white, red, and yellow, and with that she died.'
'My darling, this is only a dream.'
'Then they tore off her dainty clothing, and cut
her beautiful body into pieces and sprinkled salt upon it.'
'My darling, this is only a dream.'
'And one of the robbers saw that there was a gold
ring still left on her finger, and as it was difficult to draw off, he
took a hatchet and cut off her finger; but the finger sprang into the
air and fell behind the great cask into my lap. And here is the finger
with the ring.' and with these words the bride drew forth the finger and
shewed it to the assembled guests.
The bridegroom, who during this recital had grown
deadly pale, up and tried to escape, but the guests seized him and held
him fast. They delivered him up to justice, and he and all his murderous
band were condemned to death for their wicked deeds.
TOM THUMB
A poor woodman sat in his cottage one night,
smoking his pipe by the fireside, while his wife sat by his side
spinning. 'How lonely it is, wife,' said he, as he puffed out a long
curl of smoke, 'for you and me to sit here by ourselves, without any
children to play about and amuse us while other people seem so happy and
merry with their children!' 'What you say is very true,' said the wife,
sighing, and turning round her wheel; 'how happy should I be if I had
but one child! If it were ever so small--nay, if it were no bigger than
my thumb--I should be very happy, and love it dearly.' Now--odd as you
may think it--it came to pass that this good woman's wish was fulfilled,
just in the very way she had wished it; for, not long afterwards, she
had a little boy, who was quite healthy and strong, but was not much
bigger than my thumb. So they said, 'Well, we cannot say we have not got
what we wished for, and, little as he is, we will love him dearly.' And
they called him Thomas Thumb.
They gave him plenty of food, yet for all they
could do he never grew bigger, but kept just the same size as he had
been when he was born. Still, his eyes were sharp and sparkling, and he
soon showed himself to be a clever little fellow, who always knew well
what he was about.
One day, as the woodman was getting ready to go
into the wood to cut fuel, he said, 'I wish I had someone to bring the
cart after me, for I want to make haste.' 'Oh, father,' cried Tom, 'I
will take care of that; the cart shall be in the wood by the time you
want it.' Then the woodman laughed, and said, 'How can that be? you
cannot reach up to the horse's bridle.' 'Never mind that, father,' said
Tom; 'if my mother will only harness the horse, I will get into his ear
and tell him which way to go.' 'Well,' said the father, 'we will try for
once.'
When the time came the mother harnessed the horse
to the cart, and put Tom into his ear; and as he sat there the little
man told the beast how to go, crying out, 'Go on!' and 'Stop!' as he
wanted: and thus the horse went on just as well as if the woodman had
driven it himself into the wood. It happened that as the horse was going
a little too fast, and Tom was calling out, 'Gently! gently!' two
strangers came up. 'What an odd thing that is!' said one: 'there is a
cart going along, and I hear a carter talking to the horse, but yet I
can see no one.' 'That is queer, indeed,' said the other; 'let us follow
the cart, and see where it goes.' So they went on into the wood, till at
last they came to the place where the woodman was. Then Tom Thumb,
seeing his father, cried out, 'See, father, here I am with the cart, all
right and safe! now take me down!' So his father took hold of the horse
with one hand, and with the other took his son out of the horse's ear,
and put him down upon a straw, where he sat as merry as you please.
The two strangers were all this time looking on,
and did not know what to say for wonder. At last one took the other
aside, and said, 'That little urchin will make our fortune, if we can
get him, and carry him about from town to town as a show; we must buy
him.' So they went up to the woodman, and asked him what he would take
for the little man. 'He will be better off,' said they, 'with us than
with you.' 'I won't sell him at all,' said the father; 'my own flesh and
blood is dearer to me than all the silver and gold in the world.' But
Tom, hearing of the bargain they wanted to make, crept up his father's
coat to his shoulder and whispered in his ear, 'Take the money, father,
and let them have me; I'll soon come back to you.'
So the woodman at last said he would sell Tom to
the strangers for a large piece of gold, and they paid the price. 'Where
would you like to sit?' said one of them. 'Oh, put me on the rim of your
hat; that will be a nice gallery for me; I can walk about there and see
the country as we go along.' So they did as he wished; and when Tom had
taken leave of his father they took him away with them.
They journeyed on till it began to be dusky, and
then the little man said, 'Let me get down, I'm tired.' So the man took
off his hat, and put him down on a clod of earth, in a ploughed field by
the side of the road. But Tom ran about amongst the furrows, and at last
slipped into an old mouse-hole. 'Good night, my masters!' said he, 'I'm
off! mind and look sharp after me the next time.' Then they ran at once
to the place, and poked the ends of their sticks into the mouse-hole,
but all in vain; Tom only crawled farther and farther in; and at last it
became quite dark, so that they were forced to go their way without
their prize, as sulky as could be.
When Tom found they were gone, he came out of his
hiding-place. 'What dangerous walking it is,' said he, 'in this ploughed
field! If I were to fall from one of these great clods, I should
undoubtedly break my neck.' At last, by good luck, he found a large
empty snail-shell. 'This is lucky,' said he, 'I can sleep here very
well'; and in he crept.
Just as he was falling asleep, he heard two men
passing by, chatting together; and one said to the other, 'How can we
rob that rich parson's house of his silver and gold?' 'I'll tell you!'
cried Tom. 'What noise was that?' said the thief, frightened; 'I'm sure
I heard someone speak.' They stood still listening, and Tom said, 'Take
me with you, and I'll soon show you how to get the parson's money.' 'But
where are you?' said they. 'Look about on the ground,' answered he, 'and
listen where the sound comes from.' At last the thieves found him out,
and lifted him up in their hands. 'You little urchin!' they said, 'what
can you do for us?' 'Why, I can get between the iron window-bars of the
parson's house, and throw you out whatever you want.' 'That's a good
thought,' said the thieves; 'come along, we shall see what you can do.'
When they came to the parson's house, Tom slipped
through the window- bars into the room, and then called out as loud as
he could bawl, 'Will you have all that is here?' At this the thieves
were frightened, and said, 'Softly, softly! Speak low, that you may not
awaken anybody.' But Tom seemed as if he did not understand them, and
bawled out again, 'How much will you have? Shall I throw it all out?'
Now the cook lay in the next room; and hearing a noise she raised
herself up in her bed and listened. Meantime the thieves were
frightened, and ran off a little way; but at last they plucked up their
hearts, and said, 'The little urchin is only trying to make fools of
us.' So they came back and whispered softly to him, saying, 'Now let us
have no more of your roguish jokes; but throw us out some of the money.'
Then Tom called out as loud as he could, 'Very well! hold your hands!
here it comes.'
The cook heard this quite plain, so she sprang out
of bed, and ran to open the door. The thieves ran off as if a wolf was
at their tails: and the maid, having groped about and found nothing,
went away for a light. By the time she came back, Tom had slipped off
into the barn; and when she had looked about and searched every hole and
corner, and found nobody, she went to bed, thinking she must have been
dreaming with her eyes open.
The little man crawled about in the hay-loft, and
at last found a snug place to finish his night's rest in; so he laid
himself down, meaning to sleep till daylight, and then find his way home
to his father and mother. But alas! how woefully he was undone! what
crosses and sorrows happen to us all in this world! The cook got up
early, before daybreak, to feed the cows; and going straight to the
hay-loft, carried away a large bundle of hay, with the little man in the
middle of it, fast asleep. He still, however, slept on, and did not
awake till he found himself in the mouth of the cow; for the cook had
put the hay into the cow's rick, and the cow had taken Tom up in a
mouthful of it. 'Good lack-a-day!' said he, 'how came I to tumble into
the mill?' But he soon found out where he really was; and was forced to
have all his wits about him, that he might not get between the cow's
teeth, and so be crushed to death. At last down he went into her
stomach. 'It is rather dark,' said he; 'they forgot to build windows in
this room to let the sun in; a candle would be no bad thing.'
Though he made the best of his bad luck, he did
not like his quarters at all; and the worst of it was, that more and
more hay was always coming down, and the space left for him became
smaller and smaller. At last he cried out as loud as he could, 'Don't
bring me any more hay! Don't bring me any more hay!'
The maid happened to be just then milking the cow;
and hearing someone speak, but seeing nobody, and yet being quite sure
it was the same voice that she had heard in the night, she was so
frightened that she fell off her stool, and overset the milk-pail. As
soon as she could pick herself up out of the dirt, she ran off as fast
as she could to her master the parson, and said, 'Sir, sir, the cow is
talking!' But the parson said, 'Woman, thou art surely mad!' However, he
went with her into the cow-house, to try and see what was the matter.
Scarcely had they set foot on the threshold, when
Tom called out, 'Don't bring me any more hay!' Then the parson himself
was frightened; and thinking the cow was surely bewitched, told his man
to kill her on the spot. So the cow was killed, and cut up; and the
stomach, in which Tom lay, was thrown out upon a dunghill.
Tom soon set himself to work to get out, which was
not a very easy task; but at last, just as he had made room to get his
head out, fresh ill-luck befell him. A hungry wolf sprang out, and
swallowed up the whole stomach, with Tom in it, at one gulp, and ran
away.
Tom, however, was still not disheartened; and
thinking the wolf would not dislike having some chat with him as he was
going along, he called out, 'My good friend, I can show you a famous
treat.' 'Where's that?' said the wolf. 'In such and such a house,' said
Tom, describing his own father's house. 'You can crawl through the drain
into the kitchen and then into the pantry, and there you will find
cakes, ham, beef, cold chicken, roast pig, apple-dumplings, and
everything that your heart can wish.'
The wolf did not want to be asked twice; so that
very night he went to the house and crawled through the drain into the
kitchen, and then into the pantry, and ate and drank there to his
heart's content. As soon as he had had enough he wanted to get away; but
he had eaten so much that he could not go out by the same way he came
in.
This was just what Tom had reckoned upon; and now
he began to set up a great shout, making all the noise he could. 'Will
you be easy?' said the wolf; 'you'll awaken everybody in the house if
you make such a clatter.' 'What's that to me?' said the little man; 'you
have had your frolic, now I've a mind to be merry myself'; and he began,
singing and shouting as loud as he could.
The woodman and his wife, being awakened by the
noise, peeped through a crack in the door; but when they saw a wolf was
there, you may well suppose that they were sadly frightened; and the
woodman ran for his axe, and gave his wife a scythe. 'Do you stay
behind,' said the woodman, 'and when I have knocked him on the head you
must rip him up with the scythe.' Tom heard all this, and cried out,
'Father, father! I am here, the wolf has swallowed me.' And his father
said, 'Heaven be praised! we have found our dear child again'; and he
told his wife not to use the scythe for fear she should hurt him. Then
he aimed a great blow, and struck the wolf on the head, and killed him
on the spot! and when he was dead they cut open his body, and set Tommy
free. 'Ah!' said the father, 'what fears we have had for you!' 'Yes,
father,' answered he; 'I have travelled all over the world, I think, in
one way or other, since we parted; and now I am very glad to come home
and get fresh air again.' 'Why, where have you been?' said his father.
'I have been in a mouse-hole--and in a snail-shell--and down a cow's
throat-- and in the wolf's belly; and yet here I am again, safe and
sound.'
'Well,' said they, 'you are come back, and we will
not sell you again for all the riches in the world.'
Then they hugged and kissed their dear little son,
and gave him plenty to eat and drink, for he was very hungry; and then
they fetched new clothes for him, for his old ones had been quite
spoiled on his journey. So Master Thumb stayed at home with his father
and mother, in peace; for though he had been so great a traveller, and
had done and seen so many fine things, and was fond enough of telling
the whole story, he always agreed that, after all, there's no place like
HOME!
RUMPELSTILTSKIN
By the side of a wood, in a country a long way
off, ran a fine stream of water; and upon the stream there stood a mill.
The miller's house was close by, and the miller, you must know, had a
very beautiful daughter. She was, moreover, very shrewd and clever; and
the miller was so proud of her, that he one day told the king of the
land, who used to come and hunt in the wood, that his daughter could
spin gold out of straw. Now this king was very fond of money; and when
he heard the miller's boast his greediness was raised, and he sent for
the girl to be brought before him. Then he led her to a chamber in his
palace where there was a great heap of straw, and gave her a
spinning-wheel, and said, 'All this must be spun into gold before
morning, as you love your life.' It was in vain that the poor maiden
said that it was only a silly boast of her father, for that she could do
no such thing as spin straw into gold: the chamber door was locked, and
she was left alone.
She sat down in one corner of the room, and began
to bewail her hard fate; when on a sudden the door opened, and a
droll-looking little man hobbled in, and said, 'Good morrow to you, my
good lass; what are you weeping for?' 'Alas!' said she, 'I must spin
this straw into gold, and I know not how.' 'What will you give me,' said
the hobgoblin, 'to do it for you?' 'My necklace,' replied the maiden. He
took her at her word, and sat himself down to the wheel, and whistled
and sang:
'Round about, round about, Lo and behold! Reel
away, reel away, Straw into gold!'
And round about the wheel went merrily; the work
was quickly done, and the straw was all spun into gold.
When the king came and saw this, he was greatly
astonished and pleased; but his heart grew still more greedy of gain,
and he shut up the poor miller's daughter again with a fresh task. Then
she knew not what to do, and sat down once more to weep; but the dwarf
soon opened the door, and said, 'What will you give me to do your task?'
'The ring on my finger,' said she. So her little friend took the ring,
and began to work at the wheel again, and whistled and sang:
'Round about, round about, Lo and behold! Reel
away, reel away, Straw into gold!'
till, long before morning, all was done again.
The king was greatly delighted to see all this
glittering treasure; but still he had not enough: so he took the
miller's daughter to a yet larger heap, and said, 'All this must be spun
tonight; and if it is, you shall be my queen.' As soon as she was alone
that dwarf came in, and said, 'What will you give me to spin gold for
you this third time?' 'I have nothing left,' said she. 'Then say you
will give me,' said the little man, 'the first little child that you may
have when you are queen.' 'That may never be,' thought the miller's
daughter: and as she knew no other way to get her task done, she said
she would do what he asked. Round went the wheel again to the old song,
and the manikin once more spun the heap into gold. The king came in the
morning, and, finding all he wanted, was forced to keep his word; so he
married the miller's daughter, and she really became queen.
At the birth of her first little child she was
very glad, and forgot the dwarf, and what she had said. But one day he
came into her room, where she was sitting playing with her baby, and put
her in mind of it. Then she grieved sorely at her misfortune, and said
she would give him all the wealth of the kingdom if he would let her
off, but in vain; till at last her tears softened him, and he said, 'I
will give you three days' grace, and if during that time you tell me my
name, you shall keep your child.'
Now the queen lay awake all night, thinking of all
the odd names that she had ever heard; and she sent messengers all over
the land to find out new ones. The next day the little man came, and she
began with TIMOTHY, ICHABOD, BENJAMIN, JEREMIAH, and all the names she
could remember; but to all and each of them he said, 'Madam, that is not
my name.'
The second day she began with all the comical
names she could hear of, BANDY-LEGS, HUNCHBACK, CROOK-SHANKS, and so on;
but the little gentleman still said to every one of them, 'Madam, that
is not my name.'
The third day one of the messengers came back, and
said, 'I have travelled two days without hearing of any other names; but
yesterday, as I was climbing a high hill, among the trees of the forest
where the fox and the hare bid each other good night, I saw a little
hut; and before the hut burnt a fire; and round about the fire a funny
little dwarf was dancing upon one leg, and singing:
'"Merrily the feast I'll make. Today I'll
brew, tomorrow bake; Merrily I'll dance and sing, For next day will a
stranger bring. Little does my lady dream Rumpelstiltskin is my
name!"'
When the queen heard this she jumped for joy, and
as soon as her little friend came she sat down upon her throne, and
called all her court round to enjoy the fun; and the nurse stood by her
side with the baby in her arms, as if it was quite ready to be given up.
Then the little man began to chuckle at the thought of having the poor
child, to take home with him to his hut in the woods; and he cried out,
'Now, lady, what is my name?' 'Is it JOHN?' asked she. 'No, madam!' 'Is
it TOM?' 'No, madam!' 'Is it JEMMY?' 'It is not.' 'Can your name be
RUMPELSTILTSKIN?' said the lady slyly. 'Some witch told you that!-- some
witch told you that!' cried the little man, and dashed his right foot in
a rage so deep into the floor, that he was forced to lay hold of it with
both hands to pull it out.
Then he made the best of his way off, while the
nurse laughed and the baby crowed; and all the court jeered at him for
having had so much trouble for nothing, and said, 'We wish you a very
good morning, and a merry feast, Mr RUMPLESTILTSKIN!'
CLEVER GRETEL
There was once a cook named Gretel, who wore shoes
with red heels, and when she walked out with them on, she turned herself
this way and that, was quite happy and thought: 'You certainly are a
pretty girl!' And when she came home she drank, in her gladness of
heart, a draught of wine, and as wine excites a desire to eat, she
tasted the best of whatever she was cooking until she was satisfied, and
said: 'The cook must know what the food is like.'
It came to pass that the master one day said to
her: 'Gretel, there is a guest coming this evening; prepare me two fowls
very daintily.' 'I will see to it, master,' answered Gretel. She killed
two fowls, scalded them, plucked them, put them on the spit, and towards
evening set them before the fire, that they might roast. The fowls began
to turn brown, and were nearly ready, but the guest had not yet arrived.
Then Gretel called out to her master: 'If the guest does not come, I
must take the fowls away from the fire, but it will be a sin and a shame
if they are not eaten the moment they are at their juiciest.' The master
said: 'I will run myself, and fetch the guest.' When the master had
turned his back, Gretel laid the spit with the fowls on one side, and
thought: 'Standing so long by the fire there, makes one sweat and
thirsty; who knows when they will come? Meanwhile, I will run into the
cellar, and take a drink.' She ran down, set a jug, said: 'God bless it
for you, Gretel,' and took a good drink, and thought that wine should
flow on, and should not be interrupted, and took yet another hearty
draught.
Then she went and put the fowls down again to the
fire, basted them, and drove the spit merrily round. But as the roast
meat smelt so good, Gretel thought: 'Something might be wrong, it ought
to be tasted!' She touched it with her finger, and said: 'Ah! how good
fowls are! It certainly is a sin and a shame that they are not eaten at
the right time!' She ran to the window, to see if the master was not
coming with his guest, but she saw no one, and went back to the fowls
and thought: 'One of the wings is burning! I had better take it off and
eat it.' So she cut it off, ate it, and enjoyed it, and when she had
done, she thought: 'The other must go down too, or else master will
observe that something is missing.' When the two wings were eaten, she
went and looked for her master, and did not see him. It suddenly
occurred to her: 'Who knows? They are perhaps not coming at all, and
have turned in somewhere.' Then she said: 'Well, Gretel, enjoy yourself,
one fowl has been cut into, take another drink, and eat it up entirely;
when it is eaten you will have some peace, why should God's good gifts
be spoilt?' So she ran into the cellar again, took an enormous drink and
ate up the one chicken in great glee. When one of the chickens was
swallowed down, and still her master did not come, Gretel looked at the
other and said: 'What one is, the other should be likewise, the two go
together; what's right for the one is right for the other; I think if I
were to take another draught it would do me no harm.' So she took
another hearty drink, and let the second chicken follow the first.
While she was making the most of it, her master
came and cried: 'Hurry up, Gretel, the guest is coming directly after
me!' 'Yes, sir, I will soon serve up,' answered Gretel. Meantime the
master looked to see what the table was properly laid, and took the
great knife, wherewith he was going to carve the chickens, and sharpened
it on the steps. Presently the guest came, and knocked politely and
courteously at the house-door. Gretel ran, and looked to see who was
there, and when she saw the guest, she put her finger to her lips and
said: 'Hush! hush! go away as quickly as you can, if my master catches
you it will be the worse for you; he certainly did ask you to supper,
but his intention is to cut off your two ears. Just listen how he is
sharpening the knife for it!' The guest heard the sharpening, and
hurried down the steps again as fast as he could. Gretel was not idle;
she ran screaming to her master, and cried: 'You have invited a fine
guest!' 'Why, Gretel? What do you mean by that?' 'Yes,' said she, 'he
has taken the chickens which I was just going to serve up, off the dish,
and has run away with them!' 'That's a nice trick!' said her master, and
lamented the fine chickens. 'If he had but left me one, so that
something remained for me to eat.' He called to him to stop, but the
guest pretended not to hear. Then he ran after him with the knife still
in his hand, crying: 'Just one, just one,' meaning that the guest should
leave him just one chicken, and not take both. The guest, however,
thought no otherwise than that he was to give up one of his ears, and
ran as if fire were burning under him, in order to take them both with
him.
THE OLD MAN AND HIS GRANDSON
There was once a very old man, whose eyes had
become dim, his ears dull of hearing, his knees trembled, and when he
sat at table he could hardly hold the spoon, and spilt the broth upon
the table-cloth or let it run out of his mouth. His son and his son's
wife were disgusted at this, so the old grandfather at last had to sit
in the corner behind the stove, and they gave him his food in an
earthenware bowl, and not even enough of it. And he used to look towards
the table with his eyes full of tears. Once, too, his trembling hands
could not hold the bowl, and it fell to the ground and broke. The young
wife scolded him, but he said nothing and only sighed. Then they brought
him a wooden bowl for a few half-pence, out of which he had to eat.
They were once sitting thus when the little
grandson of four years old began to gather together some bits of wood
upon the ground. 'What are you doing there?' asked the father. 'I am
making a little trough,' answered the child, 'for father and mother to
eat out of when I am big.'
The man and his wife looked at each other for a
while, and presently began to cry. Then they took the old grandfather to
the table, and henceforth always let him eat with them, and likewise
said nothing if he did spill a little of anything.
THE LITTLE PEASANT
There was a certain village wherein no one lived
but really rich peasants, and just one poor one, whom they called the
little peasant. He had not even so much as a cow, and still less money
to buy one, and yet he and his wife did so wish to have one. One day he
said to her: 'Listen, I have a good idea, there is our gossip the
carpenter, he shall make us a wooden calf, and paint it brown, so that
it looks like any other, and in time it will certainly get big and be a
cow.' the woman also liked the idea, and their gossip the carpenter cut
and planed the calf, and painted it as it ought to be, and made it with
its head hanging down as if it were eating.
Next morning when the cows were being driven out,
the little peasant called the cow-herd in and said: 'Look, I have a
little calf there, but it is still small and has to be carried.' The
cow-herd said: 'All right,' and took it in his arms and carried it to
the pasture, and set it among the grass. The little calf always remained
standing like one which was eating, and the cow-herd said: 'It will soon
run by itself, just look how it eats already!' At night when he was
going to drive the herd home again, he said to the calf: 'If you can
stand there and eat your fill, you can also go on your four legs; I
don't care to drag you home again in my arms.' But the little peasant
stood at his door, and waited for his little calf, and when the cow-herd
drove the cows through the village, and the calf was missing, he
inquired where it was. The cow-herd answered: 'It is still standing out
there eating. It would not stop and come with us.' But the little
peasant said: 'Oh, but I must have my beast back again.' Then they went
back to the meadow together, but someone had stolen the calf, and it was
gone. The cow-herd said: 'It must have run away.' The peasant, however,
said: 'Don't tell me that,' and led the cow-herd before the mayor, who
for his carelessness condemned him to give the peasant a cow for the
calf which had run away.
And now the little peasant and his wife had the
cow for which they had so long wished, and they were heartily glad, but
they had no food for it, and could give it nothing to eat, so it soon
had to be killed. They salted the flesh, and the peasant went into the
town and wanted to sell the skin there, so that he might buy a new calf
with the proceeds. On the way he passed by a mill, and there sat a raven
with broken wings, and out of pity he took him and wrapped him in the
skin. But as the weather grew so bad and there was a storm of rain and
wind, he could go no farther, and turned back to the mill and begged for
shelter. The miller's wife was alone in the house, and said to the
peasant: 'Lay yourself on the straw there,' and gave him a slice of
bread and cheese. The peasant ate it, and lay down with his skin beside
him, and the woman thought: 'He is tired and has gone to sleep.' In the
meantime came the parson; the miller's wife received him well, and said:
'My husband is out, so we will have a feast.' The peasant listened, and
when he heard them talk about feasting he was vexed that he had been
forced to make shift with a slice of bread and cheese. Then the woman
served up four different things, roast meat, salad, cakes, and wine.
Just as they were about to sit down and eat, there
was a knocking outside. The woman said: 'Oh, heavens! It is my husband!'
she quickly hid the roast meat inside the tiled stove, the wine under
the pillow, the salad on the bed, the cakes under it, and the parson in
the closet on the porch. Then she opened the door for her husband, and
said: 'Thank heaven, you are back again! There is such a storm, it looks
as if the world were coming to an end.' The miller saw the peasant lying
on the straw, and asked, 'What is that fellow doing there?' 'Ah,' said
the wife, 'the poor knave came in the storm and rain, and begged for
shelter, so I gave him a bit of bread and cheese, and showed him where
the straw was.' The man said: 'I have no objection, but be quick and get
me something to eat.' The woman said: 'But I have nothing but bread and
cheese.' 'I am contented with anything,' replied the husband, 'so far as
I am concerned, bread and cheese will do,' and looked at the peasant and
said: 'Come and eat some more with me.' The peasant did not require to
be invited twice, but got up and ate. After this the miller saw the skin
in which the raven was, lying on the ground, and asked: 'What have you
there?' The peasant answered: 'I have a soothsayer inside it.' 'Can he
foretell anything to me?' said the miller. 'Why not?' answered the
peasant: 'but he only says four things, and the fifth he keeps to
himself.' The miller was curious, and said: 'Let him foretell something
for once.' Then the peasant pinched the raven's head, so that he croaked
and made a noise like krr, krr. The miller said: 'What did he say?' The
peasant answered: 'In the first place, he says that there is some wine
hidden under the pillow.' 'Bless me!' cried the miller, and went there
and found the wine. 'Now go on,' said he. The peasant made the raven
croak again, and said: 'In the second place, he says that there is some
roast meat in the tiled stove.' 'Upon my word!' cried the miller, and
went thither, and found the roast meat. The peasant made the raven
prophesy still more, and said: 'Thirdly, he says that there is some
salad on the bed.' 'That would be a fine thing!' cried the miller, and
went there and found the salad. At last the peasant pinched the raven
once more till he croaked, and said: 'Fourthly, he says that there are
some cakes under the bed.' 'That would be a fine thing!' cried the
miller, and looked there, and found the cakes.
And now the two sat down to the table together,
but the miller's wife was frightened to death, and went to bed and took
all the keys with her. The miller would have liked much to know the
fifth, but the little peasant said: 'First, we will quickly eat the four
things, for the fifth is something bad.' So they ate, and after that
they bargained how much the miller was to give for the fifth prophecy,
until they agreed on three hundred talers. Then the peasant once more
pinched the raven's head till he croaked loudly. The miller asked: 'What
did he say?' The peasant replied: 'He says that the Devil is hiding
outside there in the closet on the porch.' The miller said: 'The Devil
must go out,' and opened the house-door; then the woman was forced to
give up the keys, and the peasant unlocked the closet. The parson ran
out as fast as he could, and the miller said: 'It was true; I saw the
black rascal with my own eyes.' The peasant, however, made off next
morning by daybreak with the three hundred talers.
At home the small peasant gradually launched out;
he built a beautiful house, and the peasants said: 'The small peasant
has certainly been to the place where golden snow falls, and people
carry the gold home in shovels.' Then the small peasant was brought
before the mayor, and bidden to say from whence his wealth came. He
answered: 'I sold my cow's skin in the town, for three hundred talers.'
When the peasants heard that, they too wished to enjoy this great
profit, and ran home, killed all their cows, and stripped off their
skins in order to sell them in the town to the greatest advantage. The
mayor, however, said: 'But my servant must go first.' When she came to
the merchant in the town, he did not give her more than two talers for a
skin, and when the others came, he did not give them so much, and said:
'What can I do with all these skins?'
Then the peasants were vexed that the small
peasant should have thus outwitted them, wanted to take vengeance on
him, and accused him of this treachery before the major. The innocent
little peasant was unanimously sentenced to death, and was to be rolled
into the water, in a barrel pierced full of holes. He was led forth, and
a priest was brought who was to say a mass for his soul. The others were
all obliged to retire to a distance, and when the peasant looked at the
priest, he recognized the man who had been with the miller's wife. He
said to him: 'I set you free from the closet, set me free from the
barrel.' At this same moment up came, with a flock of sheep, the very
shepherd whom the peasant knew had long been wishing to be mayor, so he
cried with all his might: 'No, I will not do it; if the whole world
insists on it, I will not do it!' The shepherd hearing that, came up to
him, and asked: 'What are you about? What is it that you will not do?'
The peasant said: 'They want to make me mayor, if I will but put myself
in the barrel, but I will not do it.' The shepherd said: 'If nothing
more than that is needful in order to be mayor, I would get into the
barrel at once.' The peasant said: 'If you will get in, you will be
mayor.' The shepherd was willing, and got in, and the peasant shut the
top down on him; then he took the shepherd's flock for himself, and
drove it away. The parson went to the crowd, and declared that the mass
had been said. Then they came and rolled the barrel towards the water.
When the barrel began to roll, the shepherd cried: 'I am quite willing
to be mayor.' They believed no otherwise than that it was the peasant
who was saying this, and answered: 'That is what we intend, but first
you shall look about you a little down below there,' and they rolled the
barrel down into the water.
After that the peasants went home, and as they
were entering the village, the small peasant also came quietly in,
driving a flock of sheep and looking quite contented. Then the peasants
were astonished, and said: 'Peasant, from whence do you come? Have you
come out of the water?' 'Yes, truly,' replied the peasant, 'I sank deep,
deep down, until at last I got to the bottom; I pushed the bottom out of
the barrel, and crept out, and there were pretty meadows on which a
number of lambs were feeding, and from thence I brought this flock away
with me.' Said the peasants: 'Are there any more there?' 'Oh, yes,' said
he, 'more than I could want.' Then the peasants made up their minds that
they too would fetch some sheep for themselves, a flock apiece, but the
mayor said: 'I come first.' So they went to the water together, and just
then there were some of the small fleecy clouds in the blue sky, which
are called little lambs, and they were reflected in the water, whereupon
the peasants cried: 'We already see the sheep down below!' The mayor
pressed forward and said: 'I will go down first, and look about me, and
if things promise well I'll call you.' So he jumped in; splash! went the
water; it sounded as if he were calling them, and the whole crowd
plunged in after him as one man. Then the entire village was dead, and
the small peasant, as sole heir, became a rich man.
FREDERICK AND CATHERINE
There was once a man called Frederick: he had a
wife whose name was Catherine, and they had not long been married. One
day Frederick said. 'Kate! I am going to work in the fields; when I come
back I shall be hungry so let me have something nice cooked, and a good
draught of ale.' 'Very well,' said she, 'it shall all be ready.' When
dinner-time drew nigh, Catherine took a nice steak, which was all the
meat she had, and put it on the fire to fry. The steak soon began to
look brown, and to crackle in the pan; and Catherine stood by with a
fork and turned it: then she said to herself, 'The steak is almost
ready, I may as well go to the cellar for the ale.' So she left the pan
on the fire and took a large jug and went into the cellar and tapped the
ale cask. The beer ran into the jug and Catherine stood looking on. At
last it popped into her head, 'The dog is not shut up--he may be running
away with the steak; that's well thought of.' So up she ran from the
cellar; and sure enough the rascally cur had got the steak in his mouth,
and was making off with it.
Away ran Catherine, and away ran the dog across
the field: but he ran faster than she, and stuck close to the steak.
'It's all gone, and "what can't be cured must be endured",'
said Catherine. So she turned round; and as she had run a good way and
was tired, she walked home leisurely to cool herself.
Now all this time the ale was running too, for
Catherine had not turned the cock; and when the jug was full the liquor
ran upon the floor till the cask was empty. When she got to the cellar
stairs she saw what had happened. 'My stars!' said she, 'what shall I do
to keep Frederick from seeing all this slopping about?' So she thought a
while; and at last remembered that there was a sack of fine meal bought
at the last fair, and that if she sprinkled this over the floor it would
suck up the ale nicely. 'What a lucky thing,' said she, 'that we kept
that meal! we have now a good use for it.' So away she went for it: but
she managed to set it down just upon the great jug full of beer, and
upset it; and thus all the ale that had been saved was set swimming on
the floor also. 'Ah! well,' said she, 'when one goes another may as well
follow.' Then she strewed the meal all about the cellar, and was quite
pleased with her cleverness, and said, 'How very neat and clean it
looks!'
At noon Frederick came home. 'Now, wife,' cried
he, 'what have you for dinner?' 'O Frederick!' answered she, 'I was
cooking you a steak; but while I went down to draw the ale, the dog ran
away with it; and while I ran after him, the ale ran out; and when I
went to dry up the ale with the sack of meal that we got at the fair, I
upset the jug: but the cellar is now quite dry, and looks so clean!'
'Kate, Kate,' said he, 'how could you do all this?' Why did you leave
the steak to fry, and the ale to run, and then spoil all the meal?'
'Why, Frederick,' said she, 'I did not know I was doing wrong; you
should have told me before.'
The husband thought to himself, 'If my wife
manages matters thus, I must look sharp myself.' Now he had a good deal
of gold in the house: so he said to Catherine, 'What pretty yellow
buttons these are! I shall put them into a box and bury them in the
garden; but take care that you never go near or meddle with them.' 'No,
Frederick,' said she, 'that I never will.' As soon as he was gone, there
came by some pedlars with earthenware plates and dishes, and they asked
her whether she would buy. 'Oh dear me, I should like to buy very much,
but I have no money: if you had any use for yellow buttons, I might deal
with you.' 'Yellow buttons!' said they: 'let us have a look at them.'
'Go into the garden and dig where I tell you, and you will find the
yellow buttons: I dare not go myself.' So the rogues went: and when they
found what these yellow buttons were, they took them all away, and left
her plenty of plates and dishes. Then she set them all about the house
for a show: and when Frederick came back, he cried out, 'Kate, what have
you been doing?' 'See,' said she, 'I have bought all these with your
yellow buttons: but I did not touch them myself; the pedlars went
themselves and dug them up.' 'Wife, wife,' said Frederick, 'what a
pretty piece of work you have made! those yellow buttons were all my
money: how came you to do such a thing?' 'Why,' answered she, 'I did not
know there was any harm in it; you should have told me.'
Catherine stood musing for a while, and at last
said to her husband, 'Hark ye, Frederick, we will soon get the gold
back: let us run after the thieves.' 'Well, we will try,' answered he;
'but take some butter and cheese with you, that we may have something to
eat by the way.' 'Very well,' said she; and they set out: and as
Frederick walked the fastest, he left his wife some way behind. 'It does
not matter,' thought she: 'when we turn back, I shall be so much nearer
home than he.'
Presently she came to the top of a hill, down the
side of which there was a road so narrow that the cart wheels always
chafed the trees on each side as they passed. 'Ah, see now,' said she,
'how they have bruised and wounded those poor trees; they will never get
well.' So she took pity on them, and made use of the butter to grease
them all, so that the wheels might not hurt them so much. While she was
doing this kind office one of her cheeses fell out of the basket, and
rolled down the hill. Catherine looked, but could not see where it had
gone; so she said, 'Well, I suppose the other will go the same way and
find you; he has younger legs than I have.' Then she rolled the other
cheese after it; and away it went, nobody knows where, down the hill.
But she said she supposed that they knew the road, and would follow her,
and she could not stay there all day waiting for them.
At last she overtook Frederick, who desired her to
give him something to eat. Then she gave him the dry bread. 'Where are
the butter and cheese?' said he. 'Oh!' answered she, 'I used the butter
to grease those poor trees that the wheels chafed so: and one of the
cheeses ran away so I sent the other after it to find it, and I suppose
they are both on the road together somewhere.' 'What a goose you are to
do such silly things!' said the husband. 'How can you say so?' said she;
'I am sure you never told me not.'
They ate the dry bread together; and Frederick
said, 'Kate, I hope you locked the door safe when you came away.' 'No,'
answered she, 'you did not tell me.' 'Then go home, and do it now before
we go any farther,' said Frederick, 'and bring with you something to
eat.'
Catherine did as he told her, and thought to
herself by the way, 'Frederick wants something to eat; but I don't think
he is very fond of butter and cheese: I'll bring him a bag of fine nuts,
and the vinegar, for I have often seen him take some.'
When she reached home, she bolted the back door,
but the front door she took off the hinges, and said, 'Frederick told me
to lock the door, but surely it can nowhere be so safe if I take it with
me.' So she took her time by the way; and when she overtook her husband
she cried out, 'There, Frederick, there is the door itself, you may
watch it as carefully as you please.' 'Alas! alas!' said he, 'what a
clever wife I have! I sent you to make the house fast, and you take the
door away, so that everybody may go in and out as they please--however,
as you have brought the door, you shall carry it about with you for your
pains.' 'Very well,' answered she, 'I'll carry the door; but I'll not
carry the nuts and vinegar bottle also--that would be too much of a
load; so if you please, I'll fasten them to the door.'
Frederick of course made no objection to that
plan, and they set off into the wood to look for the thieves; but they
could not find them: and when it grew dark, they climbed up into a tree
to spend the night there. Scarcely were they up, than who should come by
but the very rogues they were looking for. They were in truth great
rascals, and belonged to that class of people who find things before
they are lost; they were tired; so they sat down and made a fire under
the very tree where Frederick and Catherine were. Frederick slipped down
on the other side, and picked up some stones. Then he climbed up again,
and tried to hit the thieves on the head with them: but they only said,
'It must be near morning, for the wind shakes the fir-apples down.'
Catherine, who had the door on her shoulder, began
to be very tired; but she thought it was the nuts upon it that were so
heavy: so she said softly, 'Frederick, I must let the nuts go.' 'No,'
answered he, 'not now, they will discover us.' 'I can't help that: they
must go.' 'Well, then, make haste and throw them down, if you will.'
Then away rattled the nuts down among the boughs and one of the thieves
cried, 'Bless me, it is hailing.'
A little while after, Catherine thought the door
was still very heavy: so she whispered to Frederick, 'I must throw the
vinegar down.' 'Pray don't,' answered he, 'it will discover us.' 'I
can't help that,' said she, 'go it must.' So she poured all the vinegar
down; and the thieves said, 'What a heavy dew there is!'
At last it popped into Catherine's head that it
was the door itself that was so heavy all the time: so she whispered,
'Frederick, I must throw the door down soon.' But he begged and prayed
her not to do so, for he was sure it would betray them. 'Here goes,
however,' said she: and down went the door with such a clatter upon the
thieves, that they cried out 'Murder!' and not knowing what was coming,
ran away as fast as they could, and left all the gold. So when Frederick
and Catherine came down, there they found all their money safe and
sound.
SWEETHEART ROLAND
There was once upon a time a woman who was a real
witch and had two daughters, one ugly and wicked, and this one she loved
because she was her own daughter, and one beautiful and good, and this
one she hated, because she was her stepdaughter. The stepdaughter once
had a pretty apron, which the other fancied so much that she became
envious, and told her mother that she must and would have that apron.
'Be quiet, my child,' said the old woman, 'and you shall have it. Your
stepsister has long deserved death; tonight when she is asleep I will
come and cut her head off. Only be careful that you are at the far side
of the bed, and push her well to the front.' It would have been all over
with the poor girl if she had not just then been standing in a corner,
and heard everything. All day long she dared not go out of doors, and
when bedtime had come, the witch's daughter got into bed first, so as to
lie at the far side, but when she was asleep, the other pushed her
gently to the front, and took for herself the place at the back, close
by the wall. In the night, the old woman came creeping in, she held an
axe in her right hand, and felt with her left to see if anyone were
lying at the outside, and then she grasped the axe with both hands, and
cut her own child's head off.
When she had gone away, the girl got up and went
to her sweetheart, who was called Roland, and knocked at his door. When
he came out, she said to him: 'Listen, dearest Roland, we must fly in
all haste; my stepmother wanted to kill me, but has struck her own
child. When daylight comes, and she sees what she has done, we shall be
lost.' 'But,' said Roland, 'I counsel you first to take away her magic
wand, or we cannot escape if she pursues us.' The maiden fetched the
magic wand, and she took the dead girl's head and dropped three drops of
blood on the ground, one in front of the bed, one in the kitchen, and
one on the stairs. Then she hurried away with her lover.
When the old witch got up next morning, she called
her daughter, and wanted to give her the apron, but she did not come.
Then the witch cried: 'Where are you?' 'Here, on the stairs, I am
sweeping,' answered the first drop of blood. The old woman went out, but
saw no one on the stairs, and cried again: 'Where are you?' 'Here in the
kitchen, I am warming myself,' cried the second drop of blood. She went
into the kitchen, but found no one. Then she cried again: 'Where are
you?' 'Ah, here in the bed, I am sleeping,' cried the third drop of
blood. She went into the room to the bed. What did she see there? Her
own child, whose head she had cut off, bathed in her blood. The witch
fell into a passion, sprang to the window, and as she could look forth
quite far into the world, she perceived her stepdaughter hurrying away
with her sweetheart Roland. 'That shall not help you,' cried she, 'even
if you have got a long way off, you shall still not escape me.' She put
on her many-league boots, in which she covered an hour's walk at every
step, and it was not long before she overtook them. The girl, however,
when she saw the old woman striding towards her, changed, with her magic
wand, her sweetheart Roland into a lake, and herself into a duck
swimming in the middle of it. The witch placed herself on the shore,
threw breadcrumbs in, and went to endless trouble to entice the duck;
but the duck did not let herself be enticed, and the old woman had to go
home at night as she had come. At this the girl and her sweetheart
Roland resumed their natural shapes again, and they walked on the whole
night until daybreak. Then the maiden changed herself into a beautiful
flower which stood in the midst of a briar hedge, and her sweetheart
Roland into a fiddler. It was not long before the witch came striding up
towards them, and said to the musician: 'Dear musician, may I pluck that
beautiful flower for myself?' 'Oh, yes,' he replied, 'I will play to you
while you do it.' As she was hastily creeping into the hedge and was
just going to pluck the flower, knowing perfectly well who the flower
was, he began to play, and whether she would or not, she was forced to
dance, for it was a magical dance. The faster he played, the more
violent springs was she forced to make, and the thorns tore her clothes
from her body, and pricked her and wounded her till she bled, and as he
did not stop, she had to dance till she lay dead on the ground.
As they were now set free, Roland said: 'Now I
will go to my father and arrange for the wedding.' 'Then in the meantime
I will stay here and wait for you,' said the girl, 'and that no one may
recognize me, I will change myself into a red stone landmark.' Then
Roland went away, and the girl stood like a red landmark in the field
and waited for her beloved. But when Roland got home, he fell into the
snares of another, who so fascinated him that he forgot the maiden. The
poor girl remained there a long time, but at length, as he did not
return at all, she was sad, and changed herself into a flower, and
thought: 'Someone will surely come this way, and trample me down.'
It befell, however, that a shepherd kept his sheep
in the field and saw the flower, and as it was so pretty, plucked it,
took it with him, and laid it away in his chest. From that time forth,
strange things happened in the shepherd's house. When he arose in the
morning, all the work was already done, the room was swept, the table
and benches cleaned, the fire in the hearth was lighted, and the water
was fetched, and at noon, when he came home, the table was laid, and a
good dinner served. He could not conceive how this came to pass, for he
never saw a human being in his house, and no one could have concealed
himself in it. He was certainly pleased with this good attendance, but
still at last he was so afraid that he went to a wise woman and asked
for her advice. The wise woman said: 'There is some enchantment behind
it, listen very early some morning if anything is moving in the room,
and if you see anything, no matter what it is, throw a white cloth over
it, and then the magic will be stopped.'
The shepherd did as she bade him, and next morning
just as day dawned, he saw the chest open, and the flower come out.
Swiftly he sprang towards it, and threw a white cloth over it. Instantly
the transformation came to an end, and a beautiful girl stood before
him, who admitted to him that she had been the flower, and that up to
this time she had attended to his house-keeping. She told him her story,
and as she pleased him he asked her if she would marry him, but she
answered: 'No,' for she wanted to remain faithful to her sweetheart
Roland, although he had deserted her. Nevertheless, she promised not to
go away, but to continue keeping house for the shepherd.
And now the time drew near when Roland's wedding
was to be celebrated, and then, according to an old custom in the
country, it was announced that all the girls were to be present at it,
and sing in honour of the bridal pair. When the faithful maiden heard of
this, she grew so sad that she thought her heart would break, and she
would not go thither, but the other girls came and took her. When it
came to her turn to sing, she stepped back, until at last she was the
only one left, and then she could not refuse. But when she began her
song, and it reached Roland's ears, he sprang up and cried: 'I know the
voice, that is the true bride, I will have no other!' Everything he had
forgotten, and which had vanished from his mind, had suddenly come home
again to his heart. Then the faithful maiden held her wedding with her
sweetheart Roland, and grief came to an end and joy began.
SNOWDROP
It was the middle of winter, when the broad flakes
of snow were falling around, that the queen of a country many thousand
miles off sat working at her window. The frame of the window was made of
fine black ebony, and as she sat looking out upon the snow, she pricked
her finger, and three drops of blood fell upon it. Then she gazed
thoughtfully upon the red drops that sprinkled the white snow, and said,
'Would that my little daughter may be as white as that snow, as red as
that blood, and as black as this ebony windowframe!' And so the little
girl really did grow up; her skin was as white as snow, her cheeks as
rosy as the blood, and her hair as black as ebony; and she was called
Snowdrop.
But this queen died; and the king soon married
another wife, who became queen, and was very beautiful, but so vain that
she could not bear to think that anyone could be handsomer than she was.
She had a fairy looking-glass, to which she used to go, and then she
would gaze upon herself in it, and say:
'Tell me, glass, tell me true! Of all the ladies
in the land, Who is fairest, tell me, who?'
And the glass had always answered:
'Thou, queen, art the fairest in all the land.'
But Snowdrop grew more and more beautiful; and
when she was seven years old she was as bright as the day, and fairer
than the queen herself. Then the glass one day answered the queen, when
she went to look in it as usual:
'Thou, queen, art fair, and beauteous to see, But
Snowdrop is lovelier far than thee!'
When she heard this she turned pale with rage and
envy, and called to one of her servants, and said, 'Take Snowdrop away
into the wide wood, that I may never see her any more.' Then the servant
led her away; but his heart melted when Snowdrop begged him to spare her
life, and he said, 'I will not hurt you, thou pretty child.' So he left
her by herself; and though he thought it most likely that the wild
beasts would tear her in pieces, he felt as if a great weight were taken
off his heart when he had made up his mind not to kill her but to leave
her to her fate, with the chance of someone finding and saving her.
Then poor Snowdrop wandered along through the wood
in great fear; and the wild beasts roared about her, but none did her
any harm. In the evening she came to a cottage among the hills, and went
in to rest, for her little feet would carry her no further. Everything
was spruce and neat in the cottage: on the table was spread a white
cloth, and there were seven little plates, seven little loaves, and
seven little glasses with wine in them; and seven knives and forks laid
in order; and by the wall stood seven little beds. As she was very
hungry, she picked a little piece of each loaf and drank a very little
wine out of each glass; and after that she thought she would lie down
and rest. So she tried all the little beds; but one was too long, and
another was too short, till at last the seventh suited her: and there
she laid herself down and went to sleep.
By and by in came the masters of the cottage. Now
they were seven little dwarfs, that lived among the mountains, and dug
and searched for gold. They lighted up their seven lamps, and saw at
once that all was not right. The first said, 'Who has been sitting on my
stool?' The second, 'Who has been eating off my plate?' The third, 'Who
has been picking my bread?' The fourth, 'Who has been meddling with my
spoon?' The fifth, 'Who has been handling my fork?' The sixth, 'Who has
been cutting with my knife?' The seventh, 'Who has been drinking my
wine?' Then the first looked round and said, 'Who has been lying on my
bed?' And the rest came running to him, and everyone cried out that
somebody had been upon his bed. But the seventh saw Snowdrop, and called
all his brethren to come and see her; and they cried out with wonder and
astonishment and brought their lamps to look at her, and said, 'Good
heavens! what a lovely child she is!' And they were very glad to see
her, and took care not to wake her; and the seventh dwarf slept an hour
with each of the other dwarfs in turn, till the night was gone.
In the morning Snowdrop told them all her story;
and they pitied her, and said if she would keep all things in order, and
cook and wash and knit and spin for them, she might stay where she was,
and they would take good care of her. Then they went out all day long to
their work, seeking for gold and silver in the mountains: but Snowdrop
was left at home; and they warned her, and said, 'The queen will soon
find out where you are, so take care and let no one in.'
But the queen, now that she thought Snowdrop was
dead, believed that she must be the handsomest lady in the land; and she
went to her glass and said:
'Tell me, glass, tell me true! Of all the ladies
in the land, Who is fairest, tell me, who?'
And the glass answered:
'Thou, queen, art the fairest in all this land:
But over the hills, in the greenwood shade, Where the seven dwarfs their
dwelling have made, There Snowdrop is hiding her head; and she Is
lovelier far, O queen! than thee.'
Then the queen was very much frightened; for she
knew that the glass always spoke the truth, and was sure that the
servant had betrayed her. And she could not bear to think that anyone
lived who was more beautiful than she was; so she dressed herself up as
an old pedlar, and went her way over the hills, to the place where the
dwarfs dwelt. Then she knocked at the door, and cried, 'Fine wares to
sell!' Snowdrop looked out at the window, and said, 'Good day, good
woman! what have you to sell?' 'Good wares, fine wares,' said she;
'laces and bobbins of all colours.' 'I will let the old lady in; she
seems to be a very good sort of body,' thought Snowdrop, as she ran down
and unbolted the door. 'Bless me!' said the old woman, 'how badly your
stays are laced! Let me lace them up with one of my nice new laces.'
Snowdrop did not dream of any mischief; so she stood before the old
woman; but she set to work so nimbly, and pulled the lace so tight, that
Snowdrop's breath was stopped, and she fell down as if she were dead.
'There's an end to all thy beauty,' said the spiteful queen, and went
away home.
In the evening the seven dwarfs came home; and I
need not say how grieved they were to see their faithful Snowdrop
stretched out upon the ground, as if she was quite dead. However, they
lifted her up, and when they found what ailed her, they cut the lace;
and in a little time she began to breathe, and very soon came to life
again. Then they said, 'The old woman was the queen herself; take care
another time, and let no one in when we are away.'
When the queen got home, she went straight to her
glass, and spoke to it as before; but to her great grief it still said:
'Thou, queen, art the fairest in all this land:
But over the hills, in the greenwood shade, Where the seven dwarfs their
dwelling have made, There Snowdrop is hiding her head; and she Is
lovelier far, O queen! than thee.'
Then the blood ran cold in her heart with spite
and malice, to see that Snowdrop still lived; and she dressed herself up
again, but in quite another dress from the one she wore before, and took
with her a poisoned comb. When she reached the dwarfs' cottage, she
knocked at the door, and cried, 'Fine wares to sell!' But Snowdrop said,
'I dare not let anyone in.' Then the queen said, 'Only look at my
beautiful combs!' and gave her the poisoned one. And it looked so
pretty, that she took it up and put it into her hair to try it; but the
moment it touched her head, the poison was so powerful that she fell
down senseless. 'There you may lie,' said the queen, and went her way.
But by good luck the dwarfs came in very early that evening; and when
they saw Snowdrop lying on the ground, they thought what had happened,
and soon found the poisoned comb. And when they took it away she got
well, and told them all that had passed; and they warned her once more
not to open the door to anyone.
Meantime the queen went home to her glass, and
shook with rage when she read the very same answer as before; and she
said, 'Snowdrop shall die, if it cost me my life.' So she went by
herself into her chamber, and got ready a poisoned apple: the outside
looked very rosy and tempting, but whoever tasted it was sure to die.
Then she dressed herself up as a peasant's wife, and travelled over the
hills to the dwarfs' cottage, and knocked at the door; but Snowdrop put
her head out of the window and said, 'I dare not let anyone in, for the
dwarfs have told me not.' 'Do as you please,' said the old woman, 'but
at any rate take this pretty apple; I will give it you.' 'No,' said
Snowdrop, 'I dare not take it.' 'You silly girl!' answered the other,
'what are you afraid of? Do you think it is poisoned? Come! do you eat
one part, and I will eat the other.' Now the apple was so made up that
one side was good, though the other side was poisoned. Then Snowdrop was
much tempted to taste, for the apple looked so very nice; and when she
saw the old woman eat, she could wait no longer. But she had scarcely
put the piece into her mouth, when she fell down dead upon the ground.
'This time nothing will save thee,' said the queen; and she went home to
her glass, and at last it said:
'Thou, queen, art the fairest of all the fair.'
And then her wicked heart was glad, and as happy
as such a heart could be.
When evening came, and the dwarfs had gone home,
they found Snowdrop lying on the ground: no breath came from her lips,
and they were afraid that she was quite dead. They lifted her up, and
combed her hair, and washed her face with wine and water; but all was in
vain, for the little girl seemed quite dead. So they laid her down upon
a bier, and all seven watched and bewailed her three whole days; and
then they thought they would bury her: but her cheeks were still rosy;
and her face looked just as it did while she was alive; so they said,
'We will never bury her in the cold ground.' And they made a coffin of
glass, so that they might still look at her, and wrote upon it in golden
letters what her name was, and that she was a king's daughter. And the
coffin was set among the hills, and one of the dwarfs always sat by it
and watched. And the birds of the air came too, and bemoaned Snowdrop;
and first of all came an owl, and then a raven, and at last a dove, and
sat by her side.
And thus Snowdrop lay for a long, long time, and
still only looked as though she was asleep; for she was even now as
white as snow, and as red as blood, and as black as ebony. At last a
prince came and called at the dwarfs' house; and he saw Snowdrop, and
read what was written in golden letters. Then he offered the dwarfs
money, and prayed and besought them to let him take her away; but they
said, 'We will not part with her for all the gold in the world.' At
last, however, they had pity on him, and gave him the coffin; but the
moment he lifted it up to carry it home with him, the piece of apple
fell from between her lips, and Snowdrop awoke, and said, 'Where am I?'
And the prince said, 'Thou art quite safe with me.'
Then he told her all that had happened, and said,
'I love you far better than all the world; so come with me to my
father's palace, and you shall be my wife.' And Snowdrop consented, and
went home with the prince; and everything was got ready with great pomp
and splendour for their wedding.
To the feast was asked, among the rest, Snowdrop's
old enemy the queen; and as she was dressing herself in fine rich
clothes, she looked in the glass and said:
'Tell me, glass, tell me true! Of all the ladies
in the land, Who is fairest, tell me, who?'
And the glass answered:
'Thou, lady, art loveliest here, I ween; But
lovelier far is the new-made queen.'
When she heard this she started with rage; but her
envy and curiosity were so great, that she could not help setting out to
see the bride. And when she got there, and saw that it was no other than
Snowdrop, who, as she thought, had been dead a long while, she choked
with rage, and fell down and died: but Snowdrop and the prince lived and
reigned happily over that land many, many years; and sometimes they went
up into the mountains, and paid a visit to the little dwarfs, who had
been so kind to Snowdrop in her time of need.
THE PINK
There was once upon a time a queen to whom God had
given no children. Every morning she went into the garden and prayed to
God in heaven to bestow on her a son or a daughter. Then an angel from
heaven came to her and said: 'Be at rest, you shall have a son with the
power of wishing, so that whatsoever in the world he wishes for, that
shall he have.' Then she went to the king, and told him the joyful
tidings, and when the time was come she gave birth to a son, and the
king was filled with gladness.
Every morning she went with the child to the
garden where the wild beasts were kept, and washed herself there in a
clear stream. It happened once when the child was a little older, that
it was lying in her arms and she fell asleep. Then came the old cook,
who knew that the child had the power of wishing, and stole it away, and
he took a hen, and cut it in pieces, and dropped some of its blood on
the queen's apron and on her dress. Then he carried the child away to a
secret place, where a nurse was obliged to suckle it, and he ran to the
king and accused the queen of having allowed her child to be taken from
her by the wild beasts. When the king saw the blood on her apron, he
believed this, fell into such a passion that he ordered a high tower to
be built, in which neither sun nor moon could be seen and had his wife
put into it, and walled up. Here she was to stay for seven years without
meat or drink, and die of hunger. But God sent two angels from heaven in
the shape of white doves, which flew to her twice a day, and carried her
food until the seven years were over.
The cook, however, thought to himself: 'If the
child has the power of wishing, and I am here, he might very easily get
me into trouble.' So he left the palace and went to the boy, who was
already big enough to speak, and said to him: 'Wish for a beautiful
palace for yourself with a garden, and all else that pertains to it.'
Scarcely were the words out of the boy's mouth, when everything was
there that he had wished for. After a while the cook said to him: 'It is
not well for you to be so alone, wish for a pretty girl as a companion.'
Then the king's son wished for one, and she immediately stood before
him, and was more beautiful than any painter could have painted her. The
two played together, and loved each other with all their hearts, and the
old cook went out hunting like a nobleman. The thought occurred to him,
however, that the king's son might some day wish to be with his father,
and thus bring him into great peril. So he went out and took the maiden
aside, and said: 'Tonight when the boy is asleep, go to his bed and
plunge this knife into his heart, and bring me his heart and tongue, and
if you do not do it, you shall lose your life.' Thereupon he went away,
and when he returned next day she had not done it, and said: 'Why should
I shed the blood of an innocent boy who has never harmed anyone?' The
cook once more said: 'If you do not do it, it shall cost you your own
life.' When he had gone away, she had a little hind brought to her, and
ordered her to be killed, and took her heart and tongue, and laid them
on a plate, and when she saw the old man coming, she said to the boy:
'Lie down in your bed, and draw the clothes over you.' Then the wicked
wretch came in and said: 'Where are the boy's heart and tongue?' The
girl reached the plate to him, but the king's son threw off the quilt,
and said: 'You old sinner, why did you want to kill me? Now will I
pronounce thy sentence. You shall become a black poodle and have a gold
collar round your neck, and shall eat burning coals, till the flames
burst forth from your throat.' And when he had spoken these words, the
old man was changed into a poodle dog, and had a gold collar round his
neck, and the cooks were ordered to bring up some live coals, and these
he ate, until the flames broke forth from his throat. The king's son
remained there a short while longer, and he thought of his mother, and
wondered if she were still alive. At length he said to the maiden: 'I
will go home to my own country; if you will go with me, I will provide
for you.' 'Ah,' she replied, 'the way is so long, and what shall I do in
a strange land where I am unknown?' As she did not seem quite willing,
and as they could not be parted from each other, he wished that she
might be changed into a beautiful pink, and took her with him. Then he
went away to his own country, and the poodle had to run after him. He
went to the tower in which his mother was confined, and as it was so
high, he wished for a ladder which would reach up to the very top. Then
he mounted up and looked inside, and cried: 'Beloved mother, Lady Queen,
are you still alive, or are you dead?' She answered: 'I have just eaten,
and am still satisfied,' for she thought the angels were there. Said he:
'I am your dear son, whom the wild beasts were said to have torn from
your arms; but I am alive still, and will soon set you free.' Then he
descended again, and went to his father, and caused himself to be
announced as a strange huntsman, and asked if he could offer him
service. The king said yes, if he was skilful and could get game for
him, he should come to him, but that deer had never taken up their
quarters in any part of the district or country. Then the huntsman
promised to procure as much game for him as he could possibly use at the
royal table. So he summoned all the huntsmen together, and bade them go
out into the forest with him. And he went with them and made them form a
great circle, open at one end where he stationed himself, and began to
wish. Two hundred deer and more came running inside the circle at once,
and the huntsmen shot them. Then they were all placed on sixty country
carts, and driven home to the king, and for once he was able to deck his
table with game, after having had none at all for years.
Now the king felt great joy at this, and commanded
that his entire household should eat with him next day, and made a great
feast. When they were all assembled together, he said to the huntsman:
'As you are so clever, you shall sit by me.' He replied: 'Lord King,
your majesty must excuse me, I am a poor huntsman.' But the king
insisted on it, and said: 'You shall sit by me,' until he did it. Whilst
he was sitting there, he thought of his dearest mother, and wished that
one of the king's principal servants would begin to speak of her, and
would ask how it was faring with the queen in the tower, and if she were
alive still, or had perished. Hardly had he formed the wish than the
marshal began, and said: 'Your majesty, we live joyously here, but how
is the queen living in the tower? Is she still alive, or has she died?'
But the king replied: 'She let my dear son be torn to pieces by wild
beasts; I will not have her named.' Then the huntsman arose and said:
'Gracious lord father she is alive still, and I am her son, and I was
not carried away by wild beasts, but by that wretch the old cook, who
tore me from her arms when she was asleep, and sprinkled her apron with
the blood of a chicken.' Thereupon he took the dog with the golden
collar, and said: 'That is the wretch!' and caused live coals to be
brought, and these the dog was compelled to devour before the sight of
all, until flames burst forth from its throat. On this the huntsman
asked the king if he would like to see the dog in his true shape, and
wished him back into the form of the cook, in the which he stood
immediately, with his white apron, and his knife by his side. When the
king saw him he fell into a passion, and ordered him to be cast into the
deepest dungeon. Then the huntsman spoke further and said: 'Father, will
you see the maiden who brought me up so tenderly and who was afterwards
to murder me, but did not do it, though her own life depended on it?'
The king replied: 'Yes, I would like to see her.' The son said: 'Most
gracious father, I will show her to you in the form of a beautiful
flower,' and he thrust his hand into his pocket and brought forth the
pink, and placed it on the royal table, and it was so beautiful that the
king had never seen one to equal it. Then the son said: 'Now will I show
her to you in her own form,' and wished that she might become a maiden,
and she stood there looking so beautiful that no painter could have made
her look more so.
And the king sent two waiting-maids and two
attendants into the tower, to fetch the queen and bring her to the royal
table. But when she was led in she ate nothing, and said: 'The gracious
and merciful God who has supported me in the tower, will soon set me
free.' She lived three days more, and then died happily, and when she
was buried, the two white doves which had brought her food to the tower,
and were angels of heaven, followed her body and seated themselves on
her grave. The aged king ordered the cook to be torn in four pieces, but
grief consumed the king's own heart, and he soon died. His son married
the beautiful maiden whom he had brought with him as a flower in his
pocket, and whether they are still alive or not, is known to God.
CLEVER ELSIE
There was once a man who had a daughter who was
called Clever Elsie. And when she had grown up her father said: 'We will
get her married.' 'Yes,' said the mother, 'if only someone would come
who would have her.' At length a man came from a distance and wooed her,
who was called Hans; but he stipulated that Clever Elsie should be
really smart. 'Oh,' said the father, 'she has plenty of good sense'; and
the mother said: 'Oh, she can see the wind coming up the street, and
hear the flies coughing.' 'Well,' said Hans, 'if she is not really
smart, I won't have her.' When they were sitting at dinner and had
eaten, the mother said: 'Elsie, go into the cellar and fetch some beer.'
Then Clever Elsie took the pitcher from the wall, went into the cellar,
and tapped the lid briskly as she went, so that the time might not
appear long. When she was below she fetched herself a chair, and set it
before the barrel so that she had no need to stoop, and did not hurt her
back or do herself any unexpected injury. Then she placed the can before
her, and turned the tap, and while the beer was running she would not
let her eyes be idle, but looked up at the wall, and after much peering
here and there, saw a pick-axe exactly above her, which the masons had
accidentally left there.
Then Clever Elsie began to weep and said: 'If I
get Hans, and we have a child, and he grows big, and we send him into
the cellar here to draw beer, then the pick-axe will fall on his head
and kill him.' Then she sat and wept and screamed with all the strength
of her body, over the misfortune which lay before her. Those upstairs
waited for the drink, but Clever Elsie still did not come. Then the
woman said to the servant: 'Just go down into the cellar and see where
Elsie is.' The maid went and found her sitting in front of the barrel,
screaming loudly. 'Elsie why do you weep?' asked the maid. 'Ah,' she
answered, 'have I not reason to weep? If I get Hans, and we have a
child, and he grows big, and has to draw beer here, the pick-axe will
perhaps fall on his head, and kill him.' Then said the maid: 'What a
clever Elsie we have!' and sat down beside her and began loudly to weep
over the misfortune. After a while, as the maid did not come back, and
those upstairs were thirsty for the beer, the man said to the boy: 'Just
go down into the cellar and see where Elsie and the girl are.' The boy
went down, and there sat Clever Elsie and the girl both weeping
together. Then he asked: 'Why are you weeping?' 'Ah,' said Elsie, 'have
I not reason to weep? If I get Hans, and we have a child, and he grows
big, and has to draw beer here, the pick-axe will fall on his head and
kill him.' Then said the boy: 'What a clever Elsie we have!' and sat
down by her, and likewise began to howl loudly. Upstairs they waited for
the boy, but as he still did not return, the man said to the woman:
'Just go down into the cellar and see where Elsie is!' The woman went
down, and found all three in the midst of their lamentations, and
inquired what was the cause; then Elsie told her also that her future
child was to be killed by the pick-axe, when it grew big and had to draw
beer, and the pick-axe fell down. Then said the mother likewise: 'What a
clever Elsie we have!' and sat down and wept with them. The man upstairs
waited a short time, but as his wife did not come back and his thirst
grew ever greater, he said: 'I must go into the cellar myself and see
where Elsie is.' But when he got into the cellar, and they were all
sitting together crying, and he heard the reason, and that Elsie's child
was the cause, and the Elsie might perhaps bring one into the world some
day, and that he might be killed by the pick-axe, if he should happen to
be sitting beneath it, drawing beer just at the very time when it fell
down, he cried: 'Oh, what a clever Elsie!' and sat down, and likewise
wept with them. The bridegroom stayed upstairs alone for along time;
then as no one would come back he thought: 'They must be waiting for me
below: I too must go there and see what they are about.' When he got
down, the five of them were sitting screaming and lamenting quite
piteously, each out- doing the other. 'What misfortune has happened
then?' asked he. 'Ah, dear Hans,' said Elsie, 'if we marry each other
and have a child, and he is big, and we perhaps send him here to draw
something to drink, then the pick-axe which has been left up there might
dash his brains out if it were to fall down, so have we not reason to
weep?' 'Come,' said Hans, 'more understanding than that is not needed
for my household, as you are such a clever Elsie, I will have you,' and
seized her hand, took her upstairs with him, and married her.
After Hans had had her some time, he said: 'Wife,
I am going out to work and earn some money for us; go into the field and
cut the corn that we may have some bread.' 'Yes, dear Hans, I will do
that.' After Hans had gone away, she cooked herself some good broth and
took it into the field with her. When she came to the field she said to
herself: 'What shall I do; shall I cut first, or shall I eat first? Oh,
I will eat first.' Then she drank her cup of broth and when she was
fully satisfied, she once more said: 'What shall I do? Shall I cut
first, or shall I sleep first? I will sleep first.' Then she lay down
among the corn and fell asleep. Hans had been at home for a long time,
but Elsie did not come; then said he: 'What a clever Elsie I have; she
is so industrious that she does not even come home to eat.' But when
evening came and she still stayed away, Hans went out to see what she
had cut, but nothing was cut, and she was lying among the corn asleep.
Then Hans hastened home and brought a fowler's net with little bells and
hung it round about her, and she still went on sleeping. Then he ran
home, shut the house-door, and sat down in his chair and worked. At
length, when it was quite dark, Clever Elsie awoke and when she got up
there was a jingling all round about her, and the bells rang at each
step which she took. Then she was alarmed, and became uncertain whether
she really was Clever Elsie or not, and said: 'Is it I, or is it not I?'
But she knew not what answer to make to this, and stood for a time in
doubt; at length she thought: 'I will go home and ask if it be I, or if
it be not I, they will be sure to know.' She ran to the door of her own
house, but it was shut; then she knocked at the window and cried: 'Hans,
is Elsie within?' 'Yes,' answered Hans, 'she is within.' Hereupon she
was terrified, and said: 'Ah, heavens! Then it is not I,' and went to
another door; but when the people heard the jingling of the bells they
would not open it, and she could get in nowhere. Then she ran out of the
village, and no one has seen her since.
THE MISER IN THE BUSH
A farmer had a faithful and diligent servant, who
had worked hard for him three years, without having been paid any wages.
At last it came into the man's head that he would not go on thus without
pay any longer; so he went to his master, and said, 'I have worked hard
for you a long time, I will trust to you to give me what I deserve to
have for my trouble.' The farmer was a sad miser, and knew that his man
was very simple-hearted; so he took out threepence, and gave him for
every year's service a penny. The poor fellow thought it was a great
deal of money to have, and said to himself, 'Why should I work hard, and
live here on bad fare any longer? I can now travel into the wide world,
and make myself merry.' With that he put his money into his purse, and
set out, roaming over hill and valley.
As he jogged along over the fields, singing and
dancing, a little dwarf met him, and asked him what made him so merry.
'Why, what should make me down-hearted?' said he; 'I am sound in health
and rich in purse, what should I care for? I have saved up my three
years' earnings and have it all safe in my pocket.' 'How much may it
come to?' said the little man. 'Full threepence,' replied the
countryman. 'I wish you would give them to me,' said the other; 'I am
very poor.' Then the man pitied him, and gave him all he had; and the
little dwarf said in return, 'As you have such a kind honest heart, I
will grant you three wishes--one for every penny; so choose whatever you
like.' Then the countryman rejoiced at his good luck, and said, 'I like
many things better than money: first, I will have a bow that will bring
down everything I shoot at; secondly, a fiddle that will set everyone
dancing that hears me play upon it; and thirdly, I should like that
everyone should grant what I ask.' The dwarf said he should have his
three wishes; so he gave him the bow and fiddle, and went his way.
Our honest friend journeyed on his way too; and if
he was merry before, he was now ten times more so. He had not gone far
before he met an old miser: close by them stood a tree, and on the
topmost twig sat a thrush singing away most joyfully. 'Oh, what a pretty
bird!' said the miser; 'I would give a great deal of money to have such
a one.' 'If that's all,' said the countryman, 'I will soon bring it
down.' Then he took up his bow, and down fell the thrush into the bushes
at the foot of the tree. The miser crept into the bush to find it; but
directly he had got into the middle, his companion took up his fiddle
and played away, and the miser began to dance and spring about, capering
higher and higher in the air. The thorns soon began to tear his clothes
till they all hung in rags about him, and he himself was all scratched
and wounded, so that the blood ran down. 'Oh, for heaven's sake!' cried
the miser, 'Master! master! pray let the fiddle alone. What have I done
to deserve this?' 'Thou hast shaved many a poor soul close enough,' said
the other; 'thou art only meeting thy reward': so he played up another
tune. Then the miser began to beg and promise, and offered money for his
liberty; but he did not come up to the musician's price for some time,
and he danced him along brisker and brisker, and the miser bid higher
and higher, till at last he offered a round hundred of florins that he
had in his purse, and had just gained by cheating some poor fellow. When
the countryman saw so much money, he said, 'I will agree to your
proposal.' So he took the purse, put up his fiddle, and travelled on
very pleased with his bargain.
Meanwhile the miser crept out of the bush
half-naked and in a piteous plight, and began to ponder how he should
take his revenge, and serve his late companion some trick. At last he
went to the judge, and complained that a rascal had robbed him of his
money, and beaten him into the bargain; and that the fellow who did it
carried a bow at his back and a fiddle hung round his neck. Then the
judge sent out his officers to bring up the accused wherever they should
find him; and he was soon caught and brought up to be tried.
The miser began to tell his tale, and said he had
been robbed of his money. 'No, you gave it me for playing a tune to
you.' said the countryman; but the judge told him that was not likely,
and cut the matter short by ordering him off to the gallows.
So away he was taken; but as he stood on the steps
he said, 'My Lord Judge, grant me one last request.' 'Anything but thy
life,' replied the other. 'No,' said he, 'I do not ask my life; only to
let me play upon my fiddle for the last time.' The miser cried out, 'Oh,
no! no! for heaven's sake don't listen to him! don't listen to him!' But
the judge said, 'It is only this once, he will soon have done.' The fact
was, he could not refuse the request, on account of the dwarf's third
gift.
Then the miser said, 'Bind me fast, bind me fast,
for pity's sake.' But the countryman seized his fiddle, and struck up a
tune, and at the first note judge, clerks, and jailer were in motion;
all began capering, and no one could hold the miser. At the second note
the hangman let his prisoner go, and danced also, and by the time he had
played the first bar of the tune, all were dancing together--judge,
court, and miser, and all the people who had followed to look on. At
first the thing was merry and pleasant enough; but when it had gone on a
while, and there seemed to be no end of playing or dancing, they began
to cry out, and beg him to leave off; but he stopped not a whit the more
for their entreaties, till the judge not only gave him his life, but
promised to return him the hundred florins.
Then he called to the miser, and said, 'Tell us
now, you vagabond, where you got that gold, or I shall play on for your
amusement only,' 'I stole it,' said the miser in the presence of all the
people; 'I acknowledge that I stole it, and that you earned it fairly.'
Then the countryman stopped his fiddle, and left the miser to take his
place at the gallows.
ASHPUTTEL
The wife of a rich man fell sick; and when she
felt that her end drew nigh, she called her only daughter to her
bed-side, and said, 'Always be a good girl, and I will look down from
heaven and watch over you.' Soon afterwards she shut her eyes and died,
and was buried in the garden; and the little girl went every day to her
grave and wept, and was always good and kind to all about her. And the
snow fell and spread a beautiful white covering over the grave; but by
the time the spring came, and the sun had melted it away again, her
father had married another wife. This new wife had two daughters of her
own, that she brought home with her; they were fair in face but foul at
heart, and it was now a sorry time for the poor little girl. 'What does
the good-for-nothing want in the parlour?' said they; 'they who would
eat bread should first earn it; away with the kitchen-maid!' Then they
took away her fine clothes, and gave her an old grey frock to put on,
and laughed at her, and turned her into the kitchen.
There she was forced to do hard work; to rise
early before daylight, to bring the water, to make the fire, to cook and
to wash. Besides that, the sisters plagued her in all sorts of ways, and
laughed at her. In the evening when she was tired, she had no bed to lie
down on, but was made to lie by the hearth among the ashes; and as this,
of course, made her always dusty and dirty, they called her Ashputtel.
It happened once that the father was going to the
fair, and asked his wife's daughters what he should bring them. 'Fine
clothes,' said the first; 'Pearls and diamonds,' cried the second. 'Now,
child,' said he to his own daughter, 'what will you have?' 'The first
twig, dear father, that brushes against your hat when you turn your face
to come homewards,' said she. Then he bought for the first two the fine
clothes and pearls and diamonds they had asked for: and on his way home,
as he rode through a green copse, a hazel twig brushed against him, and
almost pushed off his hat: so he broke it off and brought it away; and
when he got home he gave it to his daughter. Then she took it, and went
to her mother's grave and planted it there; and cried so much that it
was watered with her tears; and there it grew and became a fine tree.
Three times every day she went to it and cried; and soon a little bird
came and built its nest upon the tree, and talked with her, and watched
over her, and brought her whatever she wished for.
Now it happened that the king of that land held a
feast, which was to last three days; and out of those who came to it his
son was to choose a bride for himself. Ashputtel's two sisters were
asked to come; so they called her up, and said, 'Now, comb our hair,
brush our shoes, and tie our sashes for us, for we are going to dance at
the king's feast.' Then she did as she was told; but when all was done
she could not help crying, for she thought to herself, she should so
have liked to have gone with them to the ball; and at last she begged
her mother very hard to let her go. 'You, Ashputtel!' said she; 'you who
have nothing to wear, no clothes at all, and who cannot even dance--you
want to go to the ball? And when she kept on begging, she said at last,
to get rid of her, 'I will throw this dishful of peas into the ash-heap,
and if in two hours' time you have picked them all out, you shall go to
the feast too.'
Then she threw the peas down among the ashes, but
the little maiden ran out at the back door into the garden, and cried
out:
'Hither, hither, through the sky, Turtle-doves and
linnets, fly! Blackbird, thrush, and chaffinch gay, Hither, hither,
haste away! One and all come help me, quick! Haste ye, haste ye!--pick,
pick, pick!'
Then first came two white doves, flying in at the
kitchen window; next came two turtle-doves; and after them came all the
little birds under heaven, chirping and fluttering in: and they flew
down into the ashes. And the little doves stooped their heads down and
set to work, pick, pick, pick; and then the others began to pick, pick,
pick: and among them all they soon picked out all the good grain, and
put it into a dish but left the ashes. Long before the end of the hour
the work was quite done, and all flew out again at the windows.
Then Ashputtel brought the dish to her mother,
overjoyed at the thought that now she should go to the ball. But the
mother said, 'No, no! you slut, you have no clothes, and cannot dance;
you shall not go.' And when Ashputtel begged very hard to go, she said,
'If you can in one hour's time pick two of those dishes of peas out of
the ashes, you shall go too.' And thus she thought she should at least
get rid of her. So she shook two dishes of peas into the ashes.
But the little maiden went out into the garden at
the back of the house, and cried out as before:
'Hither, hither, through the sky, Turtle-doves and
linnets, fly! Blackbird, thrush, and chaffinch gay, Hither, hither,
haste away! One and all come help me, quick! Haste ye, haste ye!--pick,
pick, pick!'
Then first came two white doves in at the kitchen
window; next came two turtle-doves; and after them came all the little
birds under heaven, chirping and hopping about. And they flew down into
the ashes; and the little doves put their heads down and set to work,
pick, pick, pick; and then the others began pick, pick, pick; and they
put all the good grain into the dishes, and left all the ashes. Before
half an hour's time all was done, and out they flew again. And then
Ashputtel took the dishes to her mother, rejoicing to think that she
should now go to the ball. But her mother said, 'It is all of no use,
you cannot go; you have no clothes, and cannot dance, and you would only
put us to shame': and off she went with her two daughters to the ball.
Now when all were gone, and nobody left at home,
Ashputtel went sorrowfully and sat down under the hazel-tree, and cried
out:
'Shake, shake, hazel-tree, Gold and silver over
me!'
Then her friend the bird flew out of the tree, and
brought a gold and silver dress for her, and slippers of spangled silk;
and she put them on, and followed her sisters to the feast. But they did
not know her, and thought it must be some strange princess, she looked
so fine and beautiful in her rich clothes; and they never once thought
of Ashputtel, taking it for granted that she was safe at home in the
dirt.
The king's son soon came up to her, and took her
by the hand and danced with her, and no one else: and he never left her
hand; but when anyone else came to ask her to dance, he said, 'This lady
is dancing with me.'
Thus they danced till a late hour of the night;
and then she wanted to go home: and the king's son said, 'I shall go and
take care of you to your home'; for he wanted to see where the beautiful
maiden lived. But she slipped away from him, unawares, and ran off
towards home; and as the prince followed her, she jumped up into the
pigeon-house and shut the door. Then he waited till her father came
home, and told him that the unknown maiden, who had been at the feast,
had hid herself in the pigeon-house. But when they had broken open the
door they found no one within; and as they came back into the house,
Ashputtel was lying, as she always did, in her dirty frock by the ashes,
and her dim little lamp was burning in the chimney. For she had run as
quickly as she could through the pigeon-house and on to the hazel-tree,
and had there taken off her beautiful clothes, and put them beneath the
tree, that the bird might carry them away, and had lain down again amid
the ashes in her little grey frock.
The next day when the feast was again held, and
her father, mother, and sisters were gone, Ashputtel went to the
hazel-tree, and said:
'Shake, shake, hazel-tree, Gold and silver over
me!'
And the bird came and brought a still finer dress
than the one she had worn the day before. And when she came in it to the
ball, everyone wondered at her beauty: but the king's son, who was
waiting for her, took her by the hand, and danced with her; and when
anyone asked her to dance, he said as before, 'This lady is dancing with
me.'
When night came she wanted to go home; and the
king's son followed here as before, that he might see into what house
she went: but she sprang away from him all at once into the garden
behind her father's house. In this garden stood a fine large pear-tree
full of ripe fruit; and Ashputtel, not knowing where to hide herself,
jumped up into it without being seen. Then the king's son lost sight of
her, and could not find out where she was gone, but waited till her
father came home, and said to him, 'The unknown lady who danced with me
has slipped away, and I think she must have sprung into the pear-tree.'
The father thought to himself, 'Can it be Ashputtel?' So he had an axe
brought; and they cut down the tree, but found no one upon it. And when
they came back into the kitchen, there lay Ashputtel among the ashes;
for she had slipped down on the other side of the tree, and carried her
beautiful clothes back to the bird at the hazel-tree, and then put on
her little grey frock.
The third day, when her father and mother and
sisters were gone, she went again into the garden, and said:
'Shake, shake, hazel-tree, Gold and silver over
me!'
Then her kind friend the bird brought a dress
still finer than the former one, and slippers which were all of gold: so
that when she came to the feast no one knew what to say, for wonder at
her beauty: and the king's son danced with nobody but her; and when
anyone else asked her to dance, he said, 'This lady is /my/ partner,
sir.'
When night came she wanted to go home; and the
king's son would go with her, and said to himself, 'I will not lose her
this time'; but, however, she again slipped away from him, though in
such a hurry that she dropped her left golden slipper upon the stairs.
The prince took the shoe, and went the next day to
the king his father, and said, 'I will take for my wife the lady that
this golden slipper fits.' Then both the sisters were overjoyed to hear
it; for they had beautiful feet, and had no doubt that they could wear
the golden slipper. The eldest went first into the room where the
slipper was, and wanted to try it on, and the mother stood by. But her
great toe could not go into it, and the shoe was altogether much too
small for her. Then the mother gave her a knife, and said, 'Never mind,
cut it off; when you are queen you will not care about toes; you will
not want to walk.' So the silly girl cut off her great toe, and thus
squeezed on the shoe, and went to the king's son. Then he took her for
his bride, and set her beside him on his horse, and rode away with her
homewards.
But on their way home they had to pass by the
hazel-tree that Ashputtel had planted; and on the branch sat a little
dove singing:
'Back again! back again! look to the shoe! The
shoe is too small, and not made for you! Prince! prince! look again for
thy bride, For she's not the true one that sits by thy side.'
Then the prince got down and looked at her foot;
and he saw, by the blood that streamed from it, what a trick she had
played him. So he turned his horse round, and brought the false bride
back to her home, and said, 'This is not the right bride; let the other
sister try and put on the slipper.' Then she went into the room and got
her foot into the shoe, all but the heel, which was too large. But her
mother squeezed it in till the blood came, and took her to the king's
son: and he set her as his bride by his side on his horse, and rode away
with her.
But when they came to the hazel-tree the little
dove sat there still, and sang:
'Back again! back again! look to the shoe! The
shoe is too small, and not made for you! Prince! prince! look again for
thy bride, For she's not the true one that sits by thy side.'
Then he looked down, and saw that the blood
streamed so much from the shoe, that her white stockings were quite red.
So he turned his horse and brought her also back again. 'This is not the
true bride,' said he to the father; 'have you no other daughters?' 'No,'
said he; 'there is only a little dirty Ashputtel here, the child of my
first wife; I am sure she cannot be the bride.' The prince told him to
send her. But the mother said, 'No, no, she is much too dirty; she will
not dare to show herself.' However, the prince would have her come; and
she first washed her face and hands, and then went in and curtsied to
him, and he reached her the golden slipper. Then she took her clumsy
shoe off her left foot, and put on the golden slipper; and it fitted her
as if it had been made for her. And when he drew near and looked at her
face he knew her, and said, 'This is the right bride.' But the mother
and both the sisters were frightened, and turned pale with anger as he
took Ashputtel on his horse, and rode away with her. And when they came
to the hazel-tree, the white dove sang:
'Home! home! look at the shoe! Princess! the shoe
was made for you! Prince! prince! take home thy bride, For she is the
true one that sits by thy side!'
And when the dove had done its song, it came
flying, and perched upon her right shoulder, and so went home with her.
THE WHITE SNAKE
A long time ago there lived a king who was famed
for his wisdom through all the land. Nothing was hidden from him, and it
seemed as if news of the most secret things was brought to him through
the air. But he had a strange custom; every day after dinner, when the
table was cleared, and no one else was present, a trusty servant had to
bring him one more dish. It was covered, however, and even the servant
did not know what was in it, neither did anyone know, for the king never
took off the cover to eat of it until he was quite alone.
This had gone on for a long time, when one day the
servant, who took away the dish, was overcome with such curiosity that
he could not help carrying the dish into his room. When he had carefully
locked the door, he lifted up the cover, and saw a white snake lying on
the dish. But when he saw it he could not deny himself the pleasure of
tasting it, so he cut of a little bit and put it into his mouth. No
sooner had it touched his tongue than he heard a strange whispering of
little voices outside his window. He went and listened, and then noticed
that it was the sparrows who were chattering together, and telling one
another of all kinds of things which they had seen in the fields and
woods. Eating the snake had given him power of understanding the
language of animals.
Now it so happened that on this very day the queen
lost her most beautiful ring, and suspicion of having stolen it fell
upon this trusty servant, who was allowed to go everywhere. The king
ordered the man to be brought before him, and threatened with angry
words that unless he could before the morrow point out the thief, he
himself should be looked upon as guilty and executed. In vain he
declared his innocence; he was dismissed with no better answer.
In his trouble and fear he went down into the
courtyard and took thought how to help himself out of his trouble. Now
some ducks were sitting together quietly by a brook and taking their
rest; and, whilst they were making their feathers smooth with their
bills, they were having a confidential conversation together. The
servant stood by and listened. They were telling one another of all the
places where they had been waddling about all the morning, and what good
food they had found; and one said in a pitiful tone: 'Something lies
heavy on my stomach; as I was eating in haste I swallowed a ring which
lay under the queen's window.' The servant at once seized her by the
neck, carried her to the kitchen, and said to the cook: 'Here is a fine
duck; pray, kill her.' 'Yes,' said the cook, and weighed her in his
hand; 'she has spared no trouble to fatten herself, and has been waiting
to be roasted long enough.' So he cut off her head, and as she was being
dressed for the spit, the queen's ring was found inside her.
The servant could now easily prove his innocence;
and the king, to make amends for the wrong, allowed him to ask a favour,
and promised him the best place in the court that he could wish for. The
servant refused everything, and only asked for a horse and some money
for travelling, as he had a mind to see the world and go about a little.
When his request was granted he set out on his way, and one day came to
a pond, where he saw three fishes caught in the reeds and gasping for
water. Now, though it is said that fishes are dumb, he heard them
lamenting that they must perish so miserably, and, as he had a kind
heart, he got off his horse and put the three prisoners back into the
water. They leapt with delight, put out their heads, and cried to him:
'We will remember you and repay you for saving us!'
He rode on, and after a while it seemed to him
that he heard a voice in the sand at his feet. He listened, and heard an
ant-king complain: 'Why cannot folks, with their clumsy beasts, keep off
our bodies? That stupid horse, with his heavy hoofs, has been treading
down my people without mercy!' So he turned on to a side path and the
ant-king cried out to him: 'We will remember you--one good turn deserves
another!'
The path led him into a wood, and there he saw two
old ravens standing by their nest, and throwing out their young ones.
'Out with you, you idle, good-for-nothing creatures!' cried they; 'we
cannot find food for you any longer; you are big enough, and can provide
for yourselves.' But the poor young ravens lay upon the ground, flapping
their wings, and crying: 'Oh, what helpless chicks we are! We must shift
for ourselves, and yet we cannot fly! What can we do, but lie here and
starve?' So the good young fellow alighted and killed his horse with his
sword, and gave it to them for food. Then they came hopping up to it,
satisfied their hunger, and cried: 'We will remember you--one good turn
deserves another!'
And now he had to use his own legs, and when he
had walked a long way, he came to a large city. There was a great noise
and crowd in the streets, and a man rode up on horseback, crying aloud:
'The king's daughter wants a husband; but whoever seeks her hand must
perform a hard task, and if he does not succeed he will forfeit his
life.' Many had already made the attempt, but in vain; nevertheless when
the youth saw the king's daughter he was so overcome by her great beauty
that he forgot all danger, went before the king, and declared himself a
suitor.
So he was led out to the sea, and a gold ring was
thrown into it, before his eyes; then the king ordered him to fetch this
ring up from the bottom of the sea, and added: 'If you come up again
without it you will be thrown in again and again until you perish amid
the waves.' All the people grieved for the handsome youth; then they
went away, leaving him alone by the sea.
He stood on the shore and considered what he
should do, when suddenly he saw three fishes come swimming towards him,
and they were the very fishes whose lives he had saved. The one in the
middle held a mussel in its mouth, which it laid on the shore at the
youth's feet, and when he had taken it up and opened it, there lay the
gold ring in the shell. Full of joy he took it to the king and expected
that he would grant him the promised reward.
But when the proud princess perceived that he was
not her equal in birth, she scorned him, and required him first to
perform another task. She went down into the garden and strewed with her
own hands ten sacksful of millet-seed on the grass; then she said:
'Tomorrow morning before sunrise these must be picked up, and not a
single grain be wanting.'
The youth sat down in the garden and considered
how it might be possible to perform this task, but he could think of
nothing, and there he sat sorrowfully awaiting the break of day, when he
should be led to death. But as soon as the first rays of the sun shone
into the garden he saw all the ten sacks standing side by side, quite
full, and not a single grain was missing. The ant-king had come in the
night with thousands and thousands of ants, and the grateful creatures
had by great industry picked up all the millet-seed and gathered them
into the sacks.
Presently the king's daughter herself came down
into the garden, and was amazed to see that the young man had done the
task she had given him. But she could not yet conquer her proud heart,
and said: 'Although he has performed both the tasks, he shall not be my
husband until he had brought me an apple from the Tree of Life.' The
youth did not know where the Tree of Life stood, but he set out, and
would have gone on for ever, as long as his legs would carry him, though
he had no hope of finding it. After he had wandered through three
kingdoms, he came one evening to a wood, and lay down under a tree to
sleep. But he heard a rustling in the branches, and a golden apple fell
into his hand. At the same time three ravens flew down to him, perched
themselves upon his knee, and said: 'We are the three young ravens whom
you saved from starving; when we had grown big, and heard that you were
seeking the Golden Apple, we flew over the sea to the end of the world,
where the Tree of Life stands, and have brought you the apple.' The
youth, full of joy, set out homewards, and took the Golden Apple to the
king's beautiful daughter, who had now no more excuses left to make.
They cut the Apple of Life in two and ate it together; and then her
heart became full of love for him, and they lived in undisturbed
happiness to a great age.
THE WOLF AND THE SEVEN LITTLE KIDS
There was once upon a time an old goat who had
seven little kids, and loved them with all the love of a mother for her
children. One day she wanted to go into the forest and fetch some food.
So she called all seven to her and said: 'Dear children, I have to go
into the forest, be on your guard against the wolf; if he comes in, he
will devour you all--skin, hair, and everything. The wretch often
disguises himself, but you will know him at once by his rough voice and
his black feet.' The kids said: 'Dear mother, we will take good care of
ourselves; you may go away without any anxiety.' Then the old one
bleated, and went on her way with an easy mind.
It was not long before someone knocked at the
house-door and called: 'Open the door, dear children; your mother is
here, and has brought something back with her for each of you.' But the
little kids knew that it was the wolf, by the rough voice. 'We will not
open the door,' cried they, 'you are not our mother. She has a soft,
pleasant voice, but your voice is rough; you are the wolf!' Then the
wolf went away to a shopkeeper and bought himself a great lump of chalk,
ate this and made his voice soft with it. Then he came back, knocked at
the door of the house, and called: 'Open the door, dear children, your
mother is here and has brought something back with her for each of you.'
But the wolf had laid his black paws against the window, and the
children saw them and cried: 'We will not open the door, our mother has
not black feet like you: you are the wolf!' Then the wolf ran to a baker
and said: 'I have hurt my feet, rub some dough over them for me.' And
when the baker had rubbed his feet over, he ran to the miller and said:
'Strew some white meal over my feet for me.' The miller thought to
himself: 'The wolf wants to deceive someone,' and refused; but the wolf
said: 'If you will not do it, I will devour you.' Then the miller was
afraid, and made his paws white for him. Truly, this is the way of
mankind.
So now the wretch went for the third time to the
house-door, knocked at it and said: 'Open the door for me, children,
your dear little mother has come home, and has brought every one of you
something back from the forest with her.' The little kids cried: 'First
show us your paws that we may know if you are our dear little mother.'
Then he put his paws in through the window and when the kids saw that
they were white, they believed that all he said was true, and opened the
door. But who should come in but the wolf! They were terrified and
wanted to hide themselves. One sprang under the table, the second into
the bed, the third into the stove, the fourth into the kitchen, the
fifth into the cupboard, the sixth under the washing-bowl, and the
seventh into the clock-case. But the wolf found them all, and used no
great ceremony; one after the other he swallowed them down his throat.
The youngest, who was in the clock-case, was the only one he did not
find. When the wolf had satisfied his appetite he took himself off, laid
himself down under a tree in the green meadow outside, and began to
sleep. Soon afterwards the old goat came home again from the forest. Ah!
what a sight she saw there! The house-door stood wide open. The table,
chairs, and benches were thrown down, the washing-bowl lay broken to
pieces, and the quilts and pillows were pulled off the bed. She sought
her children, but they were nowhere to be found. She called them one
after another by name, but no one answered. At last, when she came to
the youngest, a soft voice cried: 'Dear mother, I am in the clock-case.'
She took the kid out, and it told her that the wolf had come and had
eaten all the others. Then you may imagine how she wept over her poor
children.
At length in her grief she went out, and the
youngest kid ran with her. When they came to the meadow, there lay the
wolf by the tree and snored so loud that the branches shook. She looked
at him on every side and saw that something was moving and struggling in
his gorged belly. 'Ah, heavens,' she said, 'is it possible that my poor
children whom he has swallowed down for his supper, can be still alive?'
Then the kid had to run home and fetch scissors, and a needle and
thread, and the goat cut open the monster's stomach, and hardly had she
made one cut, than one little kid thrust its head out, and when she had
cut farther, all six sprang out one after another, and were all still
alive, and had suffered no injury whatever, for in his greediness the
monster had swallowed them down whole. What rejoicing there was! They
embraced their dear mother, and jumped like a tailor at his wedding. The
mother, however, said: 'Now go and look for some big stones, and we will
fill the wicked beast's stomach with them while he is still asleep.'
Then the seven kids dragged the stones thither with all speed, and put
as many of them into this stomach as they could get in; and the mother
sewed him up again in the greatest haste, so that he was not aware of
anything and never once stirred.
When the wolf at length had had his fill of sleep,
he got on his legs, and as the stones in his stomach made him very
thirsty, he wanted to go to a well to drink. But when he began to walk
and to move about, the stones in his stomach knocked against each other
and rattled. Then cried he:
'What rumbles and tumbles Against my poor bones? I
thought 'twas six kids, But it feels like big stones.'
And when he got to the well and stooped over the
water to drink, the heavy stones made him fall in, and he drowned
miserably. When the seven kids saw that, they came running to the spot
and cried aloud: 'The wolf is dead! The wolf is dead!' and danced for
joy round about the well with their mother.
THE QUEEN BEE
Two kings' sons once upon a time went into the
world to seek their fortunes; but they soon fell into a wasteful foolish
way of living, so that they could not return home again. Then their
brother, who was a little insignificant dwarf, went out to seek for his
brothers: but when he had found them they only laughed at him, to think
that he, who was so young and simple, should try to travel through the
world, when they, who were so much wiser, had been unable to get on.
However, they all set out on their journey together, and came at last to
an ant- hill. The two elder brothers would have pulled it down, in order
to see how the poor ants in their fright would run about and carry off
their eggs. But the little dwarf said, 'Let the poor things enjoy
themselves, I will not suffer you to trouble them.'
So on they went, and came to a lake where many
many ducks were swimming about. The two brothers wanted to catch two,
and roast them. But the dwarf said, 'Let the poor things enjoy
themselves, you shall not kill them.' Next they came to a bees'-nest in
a hollow tree, and there was so much honey that it ran down the trunk;
and the two brothers wanted to light a fire under the tree and kill the
bees, so as to get their honey. But the dwarf held them back, and said,
'Let the pretty insects enjoy themselves, I cannot let you burn them.'
At length the three brothers came to a castle: and
as they passed by the stables they saw fine horses standing there, but
all were of marble, and no man was to be seen. Then they went through
all the rooms, till they came to a door on which were three locks: but
in the middle of the door was a wicket, so that they could look into the
next room. There they saw a little grey old man sitting at a table; and
they called to him once or twice, but he did not hear: however, they
called a third time, and then he rose and came out to them.
He said nothing, but took hold of them and led
them to a beautiful table covered with all sorts of good things: and
when they had eaten and drunk, he showed each of them to a bed-chamber.
The next morning he came to the eldest and took
him to a marble table, where there were three tablets, containing an
account of the means by which the castle might be disenchanted. The
first tablet said: 'In the wood, under the moss, lie the thousand pearls
belonging to the king's daughter; they must all be found: and if one be
missing by set of sun, he who seeks them will be turned into marble.'
The eldest brother set out, and sought for the
pearls the whole day: but the evening came, and he had not found the
first hundred: so he was turned into stone as the tablet had foretold.
The next day the second brother undertook the
task; but he succeeded no better than the first; for he could only find
the second hundred of the pearls; and therefore he too was turned into
stone.
At last came the little dwarf's turn; and he
looked in the moss; but it was so hard to find the pearls, and the job
was so tiresome!--so he sat down upon a stone and cried. And as he sat
there, the king of the ants (whose life he had saved) came to help him,
with five thousand ants; and it was not long before they had found all
the pearls and laid them in a heap.
The second tablet said: 'The key of the princess's
bed-chamber must be fished up out of the lake.' And as the dwarf came to
the brink of it, he saw the two ducks whose lives he had saved swimming
about; and they dived down and soon brought in the key from the bottom.
The third task was the hardest. It was to choose
out the youngest and the best of the king's three daughters. Now they
were all beautiful, and all exactly alike: but he was told that the
eldest had eaten a piece of sugar, the next some sweet syrup, and the
youngest a spoonful of honey; so he was to guess which it was that had
eaten the honey.
Then came the queen of the bees, who had been
saved by the little dwarf from the fire, and she tried the lips of all
three; but at last she sat upon the lips of the one that had eaten the
honey: and so the dwarf knew which was the youngest. Thus the spell was
broken, and all who had been turned into stones awoke, and took their
proper forms. And the dwarf married the youngest and the best of the
princesses, and was king after her father's death; but his two brothers
married the other two sisters.
THE ELVES AND THE SHOEMAKER
There was once a shoemaker, who worked very hard
and was very honest: but still he could not earn enough to live upon;
and at last all he had in the world was gone, save just leather enough
to make one pair of shoes.
Then he cut his leather out, all ready to make up
the next day, meaning to rise early in the morning to his work. His
conscience was clear and his heart light amidst all his troubles; so he
went peaceably to bed, left all his cares to Heaven, and soon fell
asleep. In the morning after he had said his prayers, he sat himself
down to his work; when, to his great wonder, there stood the shoes all
ready made, upon the table. The good man knew not what to say or think
at such an odd thing happening. He looked at the workmanship; there was
not one false stitch in the whole job; all was so neat and true, that it
was quite a masterpiece.
The same day a customer came in, and the shoes
suited him so well that he willingly paid a price higher than usual for
them; and the poor shoemaker, with the money, bought leather enough to
make two pairs more. In the evening he cut out the work, and went to bed
early, that he might get up and begin betimes next day; but he was saved
all the trouble, for when he got up in the morning the work was done
ready to his hand. Soon in came buyers, who paid him handsomely for his
goods, so that he bought leather enough for four pair more. He cut out
the work again overnight and found it done in the morning, as before;
and so it went on for some time: what was got ready in the evening was
always done by daybreak, and the good man soon became thriving and well
off again.
One evening, about Christmas-time, as he and his
wife were sitting over the fire chatting together, he said to her, 'I
should like to sit up and watch tonight, that we may see who it is that
comes and does my work for me.' The wife liked the thought; so they left
a light burning, and hid themselves in a corner of the room, behind a
curtain that was hung up there, and watched what would happen.
As soon as it was midnight, there came in two
little naked dwarfs; and they sat themselves upon the shoemaker's bench,
took up all the work that was cut out, and began to ply with their
little fingers, stitching and rapping and tapping away at such a rate,
that the shoemaker was all wonder, and could not take his eyes off them.
And on they went, till the job was quite done, and the shoes stood ready
for use upon the table. This was long before daybreak; and then they
bustled away as quick as lightning.
The next day the wife said to the shoemaker.
'These little wights have made us rich, and we ought to be thankful to
them, and do them a good turn if we can. I am quite sorry to see them
run about as they do; and indeed it is not very decent, for they have
nothing upon their backs to keep off the cold. I'll tell you what, I
will make each of them a shirt, and a coat and waistcoat, and a pair of
pantaloons into the bargain; and do you make each of them a little pair
of shoes.'
The thought pleased the good cobbler very much;
and one evening, when all the things were ready, they laid them on the
table, instead of the work that they used to cut out, and then went and
hid themselves, to watch what the little elves would do.
About midnight in they came, dancing and skipping,
hopped round the room, and then went to sit down to their work as usual;
but when they saw the clothes lying for them, they laughed and chuckled,
and seemed mightily delighted.
Then they dressed themselves in the twinkling of
an eye, and danced and capered and sprang about, as merry as could be;
till at last they danced out at the door, and away over the green.
The good couple saw them no more; but everything
went well with them from that time forward, as long as they lived.
THE JUNIPER-TREE
Long, long ago, some two thousand years or so,
there lived a rich man with a good and beautiful wife. They loved each
other dearly, but sorrowed much that they had no children. So greatly
did they desire to have one, that the wife prayed for it day and night,
but still they remained childless.
In front of the house there was a court, in which
grew a juniper-tree. One winter's day the wife stood under the tree to
peel some apples, and as she was peeling them, she cut her finger, and
the blood fell on the snow. 'Ah,' sighed the woman heavily, 'if I had
but a child, as red as blood and as white as snow,' and as she spoke the
words, her heart grew light within her, and it seemed to her that her
wish was granted, and she returned to the house feeling glad and
comforted. A month passed, and the snow had all disappeared; then
another month went by, and all the earth was green. So the months
followed one another, and first the trees budded in the woods, and soon
the green branches grew thickly intertwined, and then the blossoms began
to fall. Once again the wife stood under the juniper-tree, and it was so
full of sweet scent that her heart leaped for joy, and she was so
overcome with her happiness, that she fell on her knees. Presently the
fruit became round and firm, and she was glad and at peace; but when
they were fully ripe she picked the berries and ate eagerly of them, and
then she grew sad and ill. A little while later she called her husband,
and said to him, weeping. 'If I die, bury me under the juniper-tree.'
Then she felt comforted and happy again, and before another month had
passed she had a little child, and when she saw that it was as white as
snow and as red as blood, her joy was so great that she died.
Her husband buried her under the juniper-tree, and
wept bitterly for her. By degrees, however, his sorrow grew less, and
although at times he still grieved over his loss, he was able to go
about as usual, and later on he married again.
He now had a little daughter born to him; the
child of his first wife was a boy, who was as red as blood and as white
as snow. The mother loved her daughter very much, and when she looked at
her and then looked at the boy, it pierced her heart to think that he
would always stand in the way of her own child, and she was continually
thinking how she could get the whole of the property for her. This evil
thought took possession of her more and more, and made her behave very
unkindly to the boy. She drove him from place to place with cuffings and
buffetings, so that the poor child went about in fear, and had no peace
from the time he left school to the time he went back.
One day the little daughter came running to her
mother in the store- room, and said, 'Mother, give me an apple.' 'Yes,
my child,' said the wife, and she gave her a beautiful apple out of the
chest; the chest had a very heavy lid and a large iron lock.
'Mother,' said the little daughter again, 'may not
brother have one too?' The mother was angry at this, but she answered,
'Yes, when he comes out of school.'
Just then she looked out of the window and saw him
coming, and it seemed as if an evil spirit entered into her, for she
snatched the apple out of her little daughter's hand, and said, 'You
shall not have one before your brother.' She threw the apple into the
chest and shut it to. The little boy now came in, and the evil spirit in
the wife made her say kindly to him, 'My son, will you have an apple?'
but she gave him a wicked look. 'Mother,' said the boy, 'how dreadful
you look! Yes, give me an apple.' The thought came to her that she would
kill him. 'Come with me,' she said, and she lifted up the lid of the
chest; 'take one out for yourself.' And as he bent over to do so, the
evil spirit urged her, and crash! down went the lid, and off went the
little boy's head. Then she was overwhelmed with fear at the thought of
what she had done. 'If only I can prevent anyone knowing that I did it,'
she thought. So she went upstairs to her room, and took a white
handkerchief out of her top drawer; then she set the boy's head again on
his shoulders, and bound it with the handkerchief so that nothing could
be seen, and placed him on a chair by the door with an apple in his
hand.
Soon after this, little Marleen came up to her
mother who was stirring a pot of boiling water over the fire, and said,
'Mother, brother is sitting by the door with an apple in his hand, and
he looks so pale; and when I asked him to give me the apple, he did not
answer, and that frightened me.'
'Go to him again,' said her mother, 'and if he
does not answer, give him a box on the ear.' So little Marleen went, and
said, 'Brother, give me that apple,' but he did not say a word; then she
gave him a box on the ear, and his head rolled off. She was so terrified
at this, that she ran crying and screaming to her mother. 'Oh!' she
said, 'I have knocked off brother's head,' and then she wept and wept,
and nothing would stop her.
'What have you done!' said her mother, 'but no one
must know about it, so you must keep silence; what is done can't be
undone; we will make him into puddings.' And she took the little boy and
cut him up, made him into puddings, and put him in the pot. But Marleen
stood looking on, and wept and wept, and her tears fell into the pot, so
that there was no need of salt.
Presently the father came home and sat down to his
dinner; he asked, 'Where is my son?' The mother said nothing, but gave
him a large dish of black pudding, and Marleen still wept without
ceasing.
The father again asked, 'Where is my son?'
'Oh,' answered the wife, 'he is gone into the
country to his mother's great uncle; he is going to stay there some
time.'
'What has he gone there for, and he never even
said goodbye to me!'
'Well, he likes being there, and he told me he
should be away quite six weeks; he is well looked after there.'
'I feel very unhappy about it,' said the husband,
'in case it should not be all right, and he ought to have said goodbye
to me.'
With this he went on with his dinner, and said,
'Little Marleen, why do you weep? Brother will soon be back.' Then he
asked his wife for more pudding, and as he ate, he threw the bones under
the table.
Little Marleen went upstairs and took her best
silk handkerchief out of her bottom drawer, and in it she wrapped all
the bones from under the table and carried them outside, and all the
time she did nothing but weep. Then she laid them in the green grass
under the juniper- tree, and she had no sooner done so, then all her
sadness seemed to leave her, and she wept no more. And now the
juniper-tree began to move, and the branches waved backwards and
forwards, first away from one another, and then together again, as it
might be someone clapping their hands for joy. After this a mist came
round the tree, and in the midst of it there was a burning as of fire,
and out of the fire there flew a beautiful bird, that rose high into the
air, singing magnificently, and when it could no more be seen, the
juniper-tree stood there as before, and the silk handkerchief and the
bones were gone.
Little Marleen now felt as lighthearted and happy
as if her brother were still alive, and she went back to the house and
sat down cheerfully to the table and ate.
The bird flew away and alighted on the house of a
goldsmith and began to sing:
'My mother killed her little son; My father
grieved when I was gone; My sister loved me best of all; She laid her
kerchief over me, And took my bones that they might lie Underneath the
juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
The goldsmith was in his workshop making a gold
chain, when he heard the song of the bird on his roof. He thought it so
beautiful that he got up and ran out, and as he crossed the threshold he
lost one of his slippers. But he ran on into the middle of the street,
with a slipper on one foot and a sock on the other; he still had on his
apron, and still held the gold chain and the pincers in his hands, and
so he stood gazing up at the bird, while the sun came shining brightly
down on the street.
'Bird,' he said, 'how beautifully you sing! Sing
me that song again.'
'Nay,' said the bird, 'I do not sing twice for
nothing. Give that gold chain, and I will sing it you again.'
'Here is the chain, take it,' said the goldsmith.
'Only sing me that again.'
The bird flew down and took the gold chain in his
right claw, and then he alighted again in front of the goldsmith and
sang:
'My mother killed her little son; My father
grieved when I was gone; My sister loved me best of all; She laid her
kerchief over me, And took my bones that they might lie Underneath the
juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
Then he flew away, and settled on the roof of a
shoemaker's house and sang:
'My mother killed her little son; My father
grieved when I was gone; My sister loved me best of all; She laid her
kerchief over me, And took my bones that they might lie Underneath the
juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
The shoemaker heard him, and he jumped up and ran
out in his shirt- sleeves, and stood looking up at the bird on the roof
with his hand over his eyes to keep himself from being blinded by the
sun.
'Bird,' he said, 'how beautifully you sing!' Then
he called through the door to his wife: 'Wife, come out; here is a bird,
come and look at it and hear how beautifully it sings.' Then he called
his daughter and the children, then the apprentices, girls and boys, and
they all ran up the street to look at the bird, and saw how splendid it
was with its red and green feathers, and its neck like burnished gold,
and eyes like two bright stars in its head.
'Bird,' said the shoemaker, 'sing me that song
again.'
'Nay,' answered the bird, 'I do not sing twice for
nothing; you must give me something.'
'Wife,' said the man, 'go into the garret; on the
upper shelf you will see a pair of red shoes; bring them to me.' The
wife went in and fetched the shoes.
'There, bird,' said the shoemaker, 'now sing me
that song again.'
The bird flew down and took the red shoes in his
left claw, and then he went back to the roof and sang:
'My mother killed her little son; My father
grieved when I was gone; My sister loved me best of all; She laid her
kerchief over me, And took my bones that they might lie Underneath the
juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
When he had finished, he flew away. He had the
chain in his right claw and the shoes in his left, and he flew right
away to a mill, and the mill went 'Click clack, click clack, click
clack.' Inside the mill were twenty of the miller's men hewing a stone,
and as they went 'Hick hack, hick hack, hick hack,' the mill went 'Click
clack, click clack, click clack.'
The bird settled on a lime-tree in front of the
mill and sang:
'My mother killed her little son;
then one of the men left off,
My father grieved when I was gone;
two more men left off and listened,
My sister loved me best of all;
then four more left off,
She laid her kerchief over me, And took my bones
that they might lie
now there were only eight at work,
Underneath
And now only five,
the juniper-tree.
and now only one,
Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
then he looked up and the last one had left off
work.
'Bird,' he said, 'what a beautiful song that is
you sing! Let me hear it too; sing it again.'
'Nay,' answered the bird, 'I do not sing twice for
nothing; give me that millstone, and I will sing it again.'
'If it belonged to me alone,' said the man, 'you
should have it.'
'Yes, yes,' said the others: 'if he will sing
again, he can have it.'
The bird came down, and all the twenty millers set
to and lifted up the stone with a beam; then the bird put his head
through the hole and took the stone round his neck like a collar, and
flew back with it to the tree and sang--
'My mother killed her little son; My father
grieved when I was gone; My sister loved me best of all; She laid her
kerchief over me, And took my bones that they might lie Underneath the
juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a beautiful bird am I!'
And when he had finished his song, he spread his
wings, and with the chain in his right claw, the shoes in his left, and
the millstone round his neck, he flew right away to his father's house.
The father, the mother, and little Marleen were
having their dinner.
'How lighthearted I feel,' said the father, 'so
pleased and cheerful.'
'And I,' said the mother, 'I feel so uneasy, as if
a heavy thunderstorm were coming.'
But little Marleen sat and wept and wept.
Then the bird came flying towards the house and
settled on the roof.
'I do feel so happy,' said the father, 'and how
beautifully the sun shines; I feel just as if I were going to see an old
friend again.'
'Ah!' said the wife, 'and I am so full of distress
and uneasiness that my teeth chatter, and I feel as if there were a fire
in my veins,' and she tore open her dress; and all the while little
Marleen sat in the corner and wept, and the plate on her knees was wet
with her tears.
The bird now flew to the juniper-tree and began
singing:
'My mother killed her little son;
the mother shut her eyes and her ears, that she
might see and hear nothing, but there was a roaring sound in her ears
like that of a violent storm, and in her eyes a burning and flashing
like lightning:
My father grieved when I was gone;
'Look, mother,' said the man, 'at the beautiful
bird that is singing so magnificently; and how warm and bright the sun
is, and what a delicious scent of spice in the air!'
My sister loved me best of all;
then little Marleen laid her head down on her
knees and sobbed.
'I must go outside and see the bird nearer,' said
the man.
'Ah, do not go!' cried the wife. 'I feel as if the
whole house were in flames!'
But the man went out and looked at the bird.
She laid her kerchief over me, And took my bones
that they might lie Underneath the juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a
beautiful bird am I!'
With that the bird let fall the gold chain, and it
fell just round the man's neck, so that it fitted him exactly.
He went inside, and said, 'See, what a splendid
bird that is; he has given me this beautiful gold chain, and looks so
beautiful himself.'
But the wife was in such fear and trouble, that
she fell on the floor, and her cap fell from her head.
Then the bird began again:
'My mother killed her little son;
'Ah me!' cried the wife, 'if I were but a thousand
feet beneath the earth, that I might not hear that song.'
My father grieved when I was gone;
then the woman fell down again as if dead.
My sister loved me best of all;
'Well,' said little Marleen, 'I will go out too
and see if the bird will give me anything.'
So she went out.
She laid her kerchief over me, And took my bones
that they might lie
and he threw down the shoes to her,
Underneath the juniper-tree Kywitt, Kywitt, what a
beautiful bird am I!'
And she now felt quite happy and lighthearted; she
put on the shoes and danced and jumped about in them. 'I was so
miserable,' she said, 'when I came out, but that has all passed away;
that is indeed a splendid bird, and he has given me a pair of red
shoes.'
The wife sprang up, with her hair standing out
from her head like flames of fire. 'Then I will go out too,' she said,
'and see if it will lighten my misery, for I feel as if the world were
coming to an end.'
But as she crossed the threshold, crash! the bird
threw the millstone down on her head, and she was crushed to death.
The father and little Marleen heard the sound and
ran out, but they only saw mist and flame and fire rising from the spot,
and when these had passed, there stood the little brother, and he took
the father and little Marleen by the hand; then they all three rejoiced,
and went inside together and sat down to their dinners and ate.
THE TURNIP
There were two brothers who were both soldiers;
the one was rich and the other poor. The poor man thought he would try
to better himself; so, pulling off his red coat, he became a gardener,
and dug his ground well, and sowed turnips.
When the seed came up, there was one plant bigger
than all the rest; and it kept getting larger and larger, and seemed as
if it would never cease growing; so that it might have been called the
prince of turnips for there never was such a one seen before, and never
will again. At last it was so big that it filled a cart, and two oxen
could hardly draw it; and the gardener knew not what in the world to do
with it, nor whether it would be a blessing or a curse to him. One day
he said to himself, 'What shall I do with it? if I sell it, it will
bring no more than another; and for eating, the little turnips are
better than this; the best thing perhaps is to carry it and give it to
the king as a mark of respect.'
Then he yoked his oxen, and drew the turnip to the
court, and gave it to the king. 'What a wonderful thing!' said the king;
'I have seen many strange things, but such a monster as this I never
saw. Where did you get the seed? or is it only your good luck? If so,
you are a true child of fortune.' 'Ah, no!' answered the gardener, 'I am
no child of fortune; I am a poor soldier, who never could get enough to
live upon; so I laid aside my red coat, and set to work, tilling the
ground. I have a brother, who is rich, and your majesty knows him well,
and all the world knows him; but because I am poor, everybody forgets
me.'
The king then took pity on him, and said, 'You
shall be poor no longer. I will give you so much that you shall be even
richer than your brother.' Then he gave him gold and lands and flocks,
and made him so rich that his brother's fortune could not at all be
compared with his.
When the brother heard of all this, and how a
turnip had made the gardener so rich, he envied him sorely, and
bethought himself how he could contrive to get the same good fortune for
himself. However, he determined to manage more cleverly than his
brother, and got together a rich present of gold and fine horses for the
king; and thought he must have a much larger gift in return; for if his
brother had received so much for only a turnip, what must his present be
wroth?
The king took the gift very graciously, and said
he knew not what to give in return more valuable and wonderful than the
great turnip; so the soldier was forced to put it into a cart, and drag
it home with him. When he reached home, he knew not upon whom to vent
his rage and spite; and at length wicked thoughts came into his head,
and he resolved to kill his brother.
So he hired some villains to murder him; and
having shown them where to lie in ambush, he went to his brother, and
said, 'Dear brother, I have found a hidden treasure; let us go and dig
it up, and share it between us.' The other had no suspicions of his
roguery: so they went out together, and as they were travelling along,
the murderers rushed out upon him, bound him, and were going to hang him
on a tree.
But whilst they were getting all ready, they heard
the trampling of a horse at a distance, which so frightened them that
they pushed their prisoner neck and shoulders together into a sack, and
swung him up by a cord to the tree, where they left him dangling, and
ran away. Meantime he worked and worked away, till he made a hole large
enough to put out his head.
When the horseman came up, he proved to be a
student, a merry fellow, who was journeying along on his nag, and
singing as he went. As soon as the man in the sack saw him passing under
the tree, he cried out, 'Good morning! good morning to thee, my friend!'
The student looked about everywhere; and seeing no one, and not knowing
where the voice came from, cried out, 'Who calls me?'
Then the man in the tree answered, 'Lift up thine
eyes, for behold here I sit in the sack of wisdom; here have I, in a
short time, learned great and wondrous things. Compared to this seat,
all the learning of the schools is as empty air. A little longer, and I
shall know all that man can know, and shall come forth wiser than the
wisest of mankind. Here I discern the signs and motions of the heavens
and the stars; the laws that control the winds; the number of the sands
on the seashore; the healing of the sick; the virtues of all simples, of
birds, and of precious stones. Wert thou but once here, my friend,
though wouldst feel and own the power of knowledge.
The student listened to all this and wondered
much; at last he said, 'Blessed be the day and hour when I found you;
cannot you contrive to let me into the sack for a little while?' Then
the other answered, as if very unwillingly, 'A little space I may allow
thee to sit here, if thou wilt reward me well and entreat me kindly; but
thou must tarry yet an hour below, till I have learnt some little
matters that are yet unknown to me.'
So the student sat himself down and waited a
while; but the time hung heavy upon him, and he begged earnestly that he
might ascend forthwith, for his thirst for knowledge was great. Then the
other pretended to give way, and said, 'Thou must let the sack of wisdom
descend, by untying yonder cord, and then thou shalt enter.' So the
student let him down, opened the sack, and set him free. 'Now then,'
cried he, 'let me ascend quickly.' As he began to put himself into the
sack heels first, 'Wait a while,' said the gardener, 'that is not the
way.' Then he pushed him in head first, tied up the sack, and soon swung
up the searcher after wisdom dangling in the air. 'How is it with thee,
friend?' said he, 'dost thou not feel that wisdom comes unto thee? Rest
there in peace, till thou art a wiser man than thou wert.'
So saying, he trotted off on the student's nag,
and left the poor fellow to gather wisdom till somebody should come and
let him down.
CLEVER HANS
The mother of Hans said: 'Whither away, Hans?'
Hans answered: 'To Gretel.' 'Behave well, Hans.' 'Oh, I'll behave well.
Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.' Hans comes to Gretel. 'Good day,
Gretel.' 'Good day, Hans. What do you bring that is good?' 'I bring
nothing, I want to have something given me.' Gretel presents Hans with a
needle, Hans says: 'Goodbye, Gretel.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans takes the needle, sticks it into a hay-cart,
and follows the cart home. 'Good evening, mother.' 'Good evening, Hans.
Where have you been?' 'With Gretel.' 'What did you take her?' 'Took
nothing; had something given me.' 'What did Gretel give you?' 'Gave me a
needle.' 'Where is the needle, Hans?' 'Stuck in the hay-cart.' 'That was
ill done, Hans. You should have stuck the needle in your sleeve.' 'Never
mind, I'll do better next time.'
'Whither away, Hans?' 'To Gretel, mother.' 'Behave
well, Hans.' 'Oh, I'll behave well. Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans comes to Gretel. 'Good day, Gretel.' 'Good day, Hans. What do you
bring that is good?' 'I bring nothing. I want to have something given to
me.' Gretel presents Hans with a knife. 'Goodbye, Gretel.' 'Goodbye,
Hans.' Hans takes the knife, sticks it in his sleeve, and goes home.
'Good evening, mother.' 'Good evening, Hans. Where have you been?' 'With
Gretel.' What did you take her?' 'Took her nothing, she gave me
something.' 'What did Gretel give you?' 'Gave me a knife.' 'Where is the
knife, Hans?' 'Stuck in my sleeve.' 'That's ill done, Hans, you should
have put the knife in your pocket.' 'Never mind, will do better next
time.'
'Whither away, Hans?' 'To Gretel, mother.' 'Behave
well, Hans.' 'Oh, I'll behave well. Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans comes to Gretel. 'Good day, Gretel.' 'Good day, Hans. What good
thing do you bring?' 'I bring nothing, I want something given me.'
Gretel presents Hans with a young goat. 'Goodbye, Gretel.' 'Goodbye,
Hans.' Hans takes the goat, ties its legs, and puts it in his pocket.
When he gets home it is suffocated. 'Good evening, mother.' 'Good
evening, Hans. Where have you been?' 'With Gretel.' 'What did you take
her?' 'Took nothing, she gave me something.' 'What did Gretel give you?'
'She gave me a goat.' 'Where is the goat, Hans?' 'Put it in my pocket.'
'That was ill done, Hans, you should have put a rope round the goat's
neck.' 'Never mind, will do better next time.'
'Whither away, Hans?' 'To Gretel, mother.' 'Behave
well, Hans.' 'Oh, I'll behave well. Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans comes to Gretel. 'Good day, Gretel.' 'Good day, Hans. What good
thing do you bring?' 'I bring nothing, I want something given me.'
Gretel presents Hans with a piece of bacon. 'Goodbye, Gretel.' 'Goodbye,
Hans.'
Hans takes the bacon, ties it to a rope, and drags
it away behind him. The dogs come and devour the bacon. When he gets
home, he has the rope in his hand, and there is no longer anything
hanging on to it. 'Good evening, mother.' 'Good evening, Hans. Where
have you been?' 'With Gretel.' 'What did you take her?' 'I took her
nothing, she gave me something.' 'What did Gretel give you?' 'Gave me a
bit of bacon.' 'Where is the bacon, Hans?' 'I tied it to a rope, brought
it home, dogs took it.' 'That was ill done, Hans, you should have
carried the bacon on your head.' 'Never mind, will do better next time.'
'Whither away, Hans?' 'To Gretel, mother.' 'Behave
well, Hans.' 'I'll behave well. Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.' Hans
comes to Gretel. 'Good day, Gretel.' 'Good day, Hans, What good thing do
you bring?' 'I bring nothing, but would have something given.' Gretel
presents Hans with a calf. 'Goodbye, Gretel.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans takes the calf, puts it on his head, and the
calf kicks his face. 'Good evening, mother.' 'Good evening, Hans. Where
have you been?' 'With Gretel.' 'What did you take her?' 'I took nothing,
but had something given me.' 'What did Gretel give you?' 'A calf.'
'Where have you the calf, Hans?' 'I set it on my head and it kicked my
face.' 'That was ill done, Hans, you should have led the calf, and put
it in the stall.' 'Never mind, will do better next time.'
'Whither away, Hans?' 'To Gretel, mother.' 'Behave
well, Hans.' 'I'll behave well. Goodbye, mother.' 'Goodbye, Hans.'
Hans comes to Gretel. 'Good day, Gretel.' 'Good
day, Hans. What good thing do you bring?' 'I bring nothing, but would
have something given.' Gretel says to Hans: 'I will go with you.'
Hans takes Gretel, ties her to a rope, leads her
to the rack, and binds her fast. Then Hans goes to his mother. 'Good
evening, mother.' 'Good evening, Hans. Where have you been?' 'With
Gretel.' 'What did you take her?' 'I took her nothing.' 'What did Gretel
give you?' 'She gave me nothing, she came with me.' 'Where have you left
Gretel?' 'I led her by the rope, tied her to the rack, and scattered
some grass for her.' 'That was ill done, Hans, you should have cast
friendly eyes on her.' 'Never mind, will do better.'
Hans went into the stable, cut out all the calves'
and sheep's eyes, and threw them in Gretel's face. Then Gretel became
angry, tore herself loose and ran away, and was no longer the bride of
Hans.
THE THREE LANGUAGES
An aged count once lived in Switzerland, who had
an only son, but he was stupid, and could learn nothing. Then said the
father: 'Hark you, my son, try as I will I can get nothing into your
head. You must go from hence, I will give you into the care of a
celebrated master, who shall see what he can do with you.' The youth was
sent into a strange town, and remained a whole year with the master. At
the end of this time, he came home again, and his father asked: 'Now, my
son, what have you learnt?' 'Father, I have learnt what the dogs say
when they bark.' 'Lord have mercy on us!' cried the father; 'is that all
you have learnt? I will send you into another town, to another master.'
The youth was taken thither, and stayed a year with this master
likewise. When he came back the father again asked: 'My son, what have
you learnt?' He answered: 'Father, I have learnt what the birds say.'
Then the father fell into a rage and said: 'Oh, you lost man, you have
spent the precious time and learnt nothing; are you not ashamed to
appear before my eyes? I will send you to a third master, but if you
learn nothing this time also, I will no longer be your father.' The
youth remained a whole year with the third master also, and when he came
home again, and his father inquired: 'My son, what have you learnt?' he
answered: 'Dear father, I have this year learnt what the frogs croak.'
Then the father fell into the most furious anger, sprang up, called his
people thither, and said: 'This man is no longer my son, I drive him
forth, and command you to take him out into the forest, and kill him.'
They took him forth, but when they should have killed him, they could
not do it for pity, and let him go, and they cut the eyes and tongue out
of a deer that they might carry them to the old man as a token.
The youth wandered on, and after some time came to
a fortress where he begged for a night's lodging. 'Yes,' said the lord
of the castle, 'if you will pass the night down there in the old tower,
go thither; but I warn you, it is at the peril of your life, for it is
full of wild dogs, which bark and howl without stopping, and at certain
hours a man has to be given to them, whom they at once devour.' The
whole district was in sorrow and dismay because of them, and yet no one
could do anything to stop this. The youth, however, was without fear,
and said: 'Just let me go down to the barking dogs, and give me
something that I can throw to them; they will do nothing to harm me.' As
he himself would have it so, they gave him some food for the wild
animals, and led him down to the tower. When he went inside, the dogs
did not bark at him, but wagged their tails quite amicably around him,
ate what he set before them, and did not hurt one hair of his head. Next
morning, to the astonishment of everyone, he came out again safe and
unharmed, and said to the lord of the castle: 'The dogs have revealed to
me, in their own language, why they dwell there, and bring evil on the
land. They are bewitched, and are obliged to watch over a great treasure
which is below in the tower, and they can have no rest until it is taken
away, and I have likewise learnt, from their discourse, how that is to
be done.' Then all who heard this rejoiced, and the lord of the castle
said he would adopt him as a son if he accomplished it successfully. He
went down again, and as he knew what he had to do, he did it thoroughly,
and brought a chest full of gold out with him. The howling of the wild
dogs was henceforth heard no more; they had disappeared, and the country
was freed from the trouble.
After some time he took it in his head that he
would travel to Rome. On the way he passed by a marsh, in which a number
of frogs were sitting croaking. He listened to them, and when he became
aware of what they were saying, he grew very thoughtful and sad. At last
he arrived in Rome, where the Pope had just died, and there was great
doubt among the cardinals as to whom they should appoint as his
successor. They at length agreed that the person should be chosen as
pope who should be distinguished by some divine and miraculous token.
And just as that was decided on, the young count entered into the
church, and suddenly two snow-white doves flew on his shoulders and
remained sitting there. The ecclesiastics recognized therein the token
from above, and asked him on the spot if he would be pope. He was
undecided, and knew not if he were worthy of this, but the doves
counselled him to do it, and at length he said yes. Then was he anointed
and consecrated, and thus was fulfilled what he had heard from the frogs
on his way, which had so affected him, that he was to be his Holiness
the Pope. Then he had to sing a mass, and did not know one word of it,
but the two doves sat continually on his shoulders, and said it all in
his ear.
THE FOX AND THE CAT
It happened that the cat met the fox in a forest,
and as she thought to herself: 'He is clever and full of experience, and
much esteemed in the world,' she spoke to him in a friendly way. 'Good
day, dear Mr Fox, how are you? How is all with you? How are you getting
on in these hard times?' The fox, full of all kinds of arrogance, looked
at the cat from head to foot, and for a long time did not know whether
he would give any answer or not. At last he said: 'Oh, you wretched
beard-cleaner, you piebald fool, you hungry mouse-hunter, what can you
be thinking of? Have you the cheek to ask how I am getting on? What have
you learnt? How many arts do you understand?' 'I understand but one,'
replied the cat, modestly. 'What art is that?' asked the fox. 'When the
hounds are following me, I can spring into a tree and save myself.' 'Is
that all?' said the fox. 'I am master of a hundred arts, and have into
the bargain a sackful of cunning. You make me sorry for you; come with
me, I will teach you how people get away from the hounds.' Just then
came a hunter with four dogs. The cat sprang nimbly up a tree, and sat
down at the top of it, where the branches and foliage quite concealed
her. 'Open your sack, Mr Fox, open your sack,' cried the cat to him, but
the dogs had already seized him, and were holding him fast. 'Ah, Mr
Fox,' cried the cat. 'You with your hundred arts are left in the lurch!
Had you been able to climb like me, you would not have lost your life.'
THE FOUR CLEVER BROTHERS
'Dear children,' said a poor man to his four sons,
'I have nothing to give you; you must go out into the wide world and try
your luck. Begin by learning some craft or another, and see how you can
get on.' So the four brothers took their walking-sticks in their hands,
and their little bundles on their shoulders, and after bidding their
father goodbye, went all out at the gate together. When they had got on
some way they came to four crossways, each leading to a different
country. Then the eldest said, 'Here we must part; but this day four
years we will come back to this spot, and in the meantime each must try
what he can do for himself.'
So each brother went his way; and as the eldest
was hastening on a man met him, and asked him where he was going, and
what he wanted. 'I am going to try my luck in the world, and should like
to begin by learning some art or trade,' answered he. 'Then,' said the
man, 'go with me, and I will teach you to become the cunningest thief
that ever was.' 'No,' said the other, 'that is not an honest calling,
and what can one look to earn by it in the end but the gallows?' 'Oh!'
said the man, 'you need not fear the gallows; for I will only teach you
to steal what will be fair game: I meddle with nothing but what no one
else can get or care anything about, and where no one can find you out.'
So the young man agreed to follow his trade, and he soon showed himself
so clever, that nothing could escape him that he had once set his mind
upon.
The second brother also met a man, who, when he
found out what he was setting out upon, asked him what craft he meant to
follow. 'I do not know yet,' said he. 'Then come with me, and be a
star-gazer. It is a noble art, for nothing can be hidden from you, when
once you understand the stars.' The plan pleased him much, and he soon
became such a skilful star-gazer, that when he had served out his time,
and wanted to leave his master, he gave him a glass, and said, 'With
this you can see all that is passing in the sky and on earth, and
nothing can be hidden from you.'
The third brother met a huntsman, who took him
with him, and taught him so well all that belonged to hunting, that he
became very clever in the craft of the woods; and when he left his
master he gave him a bow, and said, 'Whatever you shoot at with this bow
you will be sure to hit.'
The youngest brother likewise met a man who asked
him what he wished to do. 'Would not you like,' said he, 'to be a
tailor?' 'Oh, no!' said the young man; 'sitting cross-legged from
morning to night, working backwards and forwards with a needle and
goose, will never suit me.' 'Oh!' answered the man, 'that is not my sort
of tailoring; come with me, and you will learn quite another kind of
craft from that.' Not knowing what better to do, he came into the plan,
and learnt tailoring from the beginning; and when he left his master, he
gave him a needle, and said, 'You can sew anything with this, be it as
soft as an egg or as hard as steel; and the joint will be so fine that
no seam will be seen.'
After the space of four years, at the time agreed
upon, the four brothers met at the four cross-roads; and having welcomed
each other, set off towards their father's home, where they told him all
that had happened to them, and how each had learned some craft.
Then, one day, as they were sitting before the
house under a very high tree, the father said, 'I should like to try
what each of you can do in this way.' So he looked up, and said to the
second son, 'At the top of this tree there is a chaffinch's nest; tell
me how many eggs there are in it.' The star-gazer took his glass, looked
up, and said, 'Five.' 'Now,' said the father to the eldest son, 'take
away the eggs without letting the bird that is sitting upon them and
hatching them know anything of what you are doing.' So the cunning thief
climbed up the tree, and brought away to his father the five eggs from
under the bird; and it never saw or felt what he was doing, but kept
sitting on at its ease. Then the father took the eggs, and put one on
each corner of the table, and the fifth in the middle, and said to the
huntsman, 'Cut all the eggs in two pieces at one shot.' The huntsman
took up his bow, and at one shot struck all the five eggs as his father
wished.
'Now comes your turn,' said he to the young
tailor; 'sew the eggs and the young birds in them together again, so
neatly that the shot shall have done them no harm.' Then the tailor took
his needle, and sewed the eggs as he was told; and when he had done, the
thief was sent to take them back to the nest, and put them under the
bird without its knowing it. Then she went on sitting, and hatched them:
and in a few days they crawled out, and had only a little red streak
across their necks, where the tailor had sewn them together.
'Well done, sons!' said the old man; 'you have
made good use of your time, and learnt something worth the knowing; but
I am sure I do not know which ought to have the prize. Oh, that a time
might soon come for you to turn your skill to some account!'
Not long after this there was a great bustle in
the country; for the king's daughter had been carried off by a mighty
dragon, and the king mourned over his loss day and night, and made it
known that whoever brought her back to him should have her for a wife.
Then the four brothers said to each other, 'Here is a chance for us; let
us try what we can do.' And they agreed to see whether they could not
set the princess free. 'I will soon find out where she is, however,'
said the star-gazer, as he looked through his glass; and he soon cried
out, 'I see her afar off, sitting upon a rock in the sea, and I can spy
the dragon close by, guarding her.' Then he went to the king, and asked
for a ship for himself and his brothers; and they sailed together over
the sea, till they came to the right place. There they found the
princess sitting, as the star-gazer had said, on the rock; and the
dragon was lying asleep, with his head upon her lap. 'I dare not shoot
at him,' said the huntsman, 'for I should kill the beautiful young lady
also.' 'Then I will try my skill,' said the thief, and went and stole
her away from under the dragon, so quietly and gently that the beast did
not know it, but went on snoring.
Then away they hastened with her full of joy in
their boat towards the ship; but soon came the dragon roaring behind
them through the air; for he awoke and missed the princess. But when he
got over the boat, and wanted to pounce upon them and carry off the
princess, the huntsman took up his bow and shot him straight through the
heart so that he fell down dead. They were still not safe; for he was
such a great beast that in his fall he overset the boat, and they had to
swim in the open sea upon a few planks. So the tailor took his needle,
and with a few large stitches put some of the planks together; and he
sat down upon these, and sailed about and gathered up all pieces of the
boat; and then tacked them together so quickly that the boat was soon
ready, and they then reached the ship and got home safe.
When they had brought home the princess to her
father, there was great rejoicing; and he said to the four brothers,
'One of you shall marry her, but you must settle amongst yourselves
which it is to be.' Then there arose a quarrel between them; and the
star-gazer said, 'If I had not found the princess out, all your skill
would have been of no use; therefore she ought to be mine.' 'Your seeing
her would have been of no use,' said the thief, 'if I had not taken her
away from the dragon; therefore she ought to be mine.' 'No, she is
mine,' said the huntsman; 'for if I had not killed the dragon, he would,
after all, have torn you and the princess into pieces.' 'And if I had
not sewn the boat together again,' said the tailor, 'you would all have
been drowned, therefore she is mine.' Then the king put in a word, and
said, 'Each of you is right; and as all cannot have the young lady, the
best way is for neither of you to have her: for the truth is, there is
somebody she likes a great deal better. But to make up for your loss, I
will give each of you, as a reward for his skill, half a kingdom.' So
the brothers agreed that this plan would be much better than either
quarrelling or marrying a lady who had no mind to have them. And the
king then gave to each half a kingdom, as he had said; and they lived
very happily the rest of their days, and took good care of their father;
and somebody took better care of the young lady, than to let either the
dragon or one of the craftsmen have her again.
LILY AND THE LION
A merchant, who had three daughters, was once
setting out upon a journey; but before he went he asked each daughter
what gift he should bring back for her. The eldest wished for pearls;
the second for jewels; but the third, who was called Lily, said, 'Dear
father, bring me a rose.' Now it was no easy task to find a rose, for it
was the middle of winter; yet as she was his prettiest daughter, and was
very fond of flowers, her father said he would try what he could do. So
he kissed all three, and bid them goodbye.
And when the time came for him to go home, he had
bought pearls and jewels for the two eldest, but he had sought
everywhere in vain for the rose; and when he went into any garden and
asked for such a thing, the people laughed at him, and asked him whether
he thought roses grew in snow. This grieved him very much, for Lily was
his dearest child; and as he was journeying home, thinking what he
should bring her, he came to a fine castle; and around the castle was a
garden, in one half of which it seemed to be summer-time and in the
other half winter. On one side the finest flowers were in full bloom,
and on the other everything looked dreary and buried in the snow. 'A
lucky hit!' said he, as he called to his servant, and told him to go to
a beautiful bed of roses that was there, and bring him away one of the
finest flowers.
This done, they were riding away well pleased,
when up sprang a fierce lion, and roared out, 'Whoever has stolen my
roses shall be eaten up alive!' Then the man said, 'I knew not that the
garden belonged to you; can nothing save my life?' 'No!' said the lion,
'nothing, unless you undertake to give me whatever meets you on your
return home; if you agree to this, I will give you your life, and the
rose too for your daughter.' But the man was unwilling to do so and
said, 'It may be my youngest daughter, who loves me most, and always
runs to meet me when I go home.' Then the servant was greatly
frightened, and said, 'It may perhaps be only a cat or a dog.' And at
last the man yielded with a heavy heart, and took the rose; and said he
would give the lion whatever should meet him first on his return.
And as he came near home, it was Lily, his
youngest and dearest daughter, that met him; she came running, and
kissed him, and welcomed him home; and when she saw that he had brought
her the rose, she was still more glad. But her father began to be very
sorrowful, and to weep, saying, 'Alas, my dearest child! I have bought
this flower at a high price, for I have said I would give you to a wild
lion; and when he has you, he will tear you in pieces, and eat you.'
Then he told her all that had happened, and said she should not go, let
what would happen.
But she comforted him, and said, 'Dear father, the
word you have given must be kept; I will go to the lion, and soothe him:
perhaps he will let me come safe home again.'
The next morning she asked the way she was to go,
and took leave of her father, and went forth with a bold heart into the
wood. But the lion was an enchanted prince. By day he and all his court
were lions, but in the evening they took their right forms again. And
when Lily came to the castle, he welcomed her so courteously that she
agreed to marry him. The wedding-feast was held, and they lived happily
together a long time. The prince was only to be seen as soon as evening
came, and then he held his court; but every morning he left his bride,
and went away by himself, she knew not whither, till the night came
again.
After some time he said to her, 'Tomorrow there
will be a great feast in your father's house, for your eldest sister is
to be married; and if you wish to go and visit her my lions shall lead
you thither.' Then she rejoiced much at the thoughts of seeing her
father once more, and set out with the lions; and everyone was overjoyed
to see her, for they had thought her dead long since. But she told them
how happy she was, and stayed till the feast was over, and then went
back to the wood.
Her second sister was soon after married, and when
Lily was asked to go to the wedding, she said to the prince, 'I will not
go alone this time--you must go with me.' But he would not, and said
that it would be a very hazardous thing; for if the least ray of the
torch-light should fall upon him his enchantment would become still
worse, for he should be changed into a dove, and be forced to wander
about the world for seven long years. However, she gave him no rest, and
said she would take care no light should fall upon him. So at last they
set out together, and took with them their little child; and she chose a
large hall with thick walls for him to sit in while the wedding-torches
were lighted; but, unluckily, no one saw that there was a crack in the
door. Then the wedding was held with great pomp, but as the train came
from the church, and passed with the torches before the hall, a very
small ray of light fell upon the prince. In a moment he disappeared, and
when his wife came in and looked for him, she found only a white dove;
and it said to her, 'Seven years must I fly up and down over the face of
the earth, but every now and then I will let fall a white feather, that
will show you the way I am going; follow it, and at last you may
overtake and set me free.'
This said, he flew out at the door, and poor Lily
followed; and every now and then a white feather fell, and showed her
the way she was to journey. Thus she went roving on through the wide
world, and looked neither to the right hand nor to the left, nor took
any rest, for seven years. Then she began to be glad, and thought to
herself that the time was fast coming when all her troubles should end;
yet repose was still far off, for one day as she was travelling on she
missed the white feather, and when she lifted up her eyes she could
nowhere see the dove. 'Now,' thought she to herself, 'no aid of man can
be of use to me.' So she went to the sun and said, 'Thou shinest
everywhere, on the hill's top and the valley's depth--hast thou anywhere
seen my white dove?' 'No,' said the sun, 'I have not seen it; but I will
give thee a casket--open it when thy hour of need comes.'
So she thanked the sun, and went on her way till
eventide; and when the moon arose, she cried unto it, and said, 'Thou
shinest through the night, over field and grove--hast thou nowhere seen
my white dove?' 'No,' said the moon, 'I cannot help thee but I will give
thee an egg-- break it when need comes.'
Then she thanked the moon, and went on till the
night-wind blew; and she raised up her voice to it, and said, 'Thou
blowest through every tree and under every leaf--hast thou not seen my
white dove?' 'No,' said the night-wind, 'but I will ask three other
winds; perhaps they have seen it.' Then the east wind and the west wind
came, and said they too had not seen it, but the south wind said, 'I
have seen the white dove--he has fled to the Red Sea, and is changed
once more into a lion, for the seven years are passed away, and there he
is fighting with a dragon; and the dragon is an enchanted princess, who
seeks to separate him from you.' Then the night-wind said, 'I will give
thee counsel. Go to the Red Sea; on the right shore stand many
rods--count them, and when thou comest to the eleventh, break it off,
and smite the dragon with it; and so the lion will have the victory, and
both of them will appear to you in their own forms. Then look round and
thou wilt see a griffin, winged like bird, sitting by the Red Sea; jump
on to his back with thy beloved one as quickly as possible, and he will
carry you over the waters to your home. I will also give thee this nut,'
continued the night-wind. 'When you are half-way over, throw it down,
and out of the waters will immediately spring up a high nut-tree on
which the griffin will be able to rest, otherwise he would not have the
strength to bear you the whole way; if, therefore, thou dost forget to
throw down the nut, he will let you both fall into the sea.'
So our poor wanderer went forth, and found all as
the night-wind had said; and she plucked the eleventh rod, and smote the
dragon, and the lion forthwith became a prince, and the dragon a
princess again. But no sooner was the princess released from the spell,
than she seized the prince by the arm and sprang on to the griffin's
back, and went off carrying the prince away with her.
Thus the unhappy traveller was again forsaken and
forlorn; but she took heart and said, 'As far as the wind blows, and so
long as the cock crows, I will journey on, till I find him once again.'
She went on for a long, long way, till at length she came to the castle
whither the princess had carried the prince; and there was a feast got
ready, and she heard that the wedding was about to be held. 'Heaven aid
me now!' said she; and she took the casket that the sun had given her,
and found that within it lay a dress as dazzling as the sun itself. So
she put it on, and went into the palace, and all the people gazed upon
her; and the dress pleased the bride so much that she asked whether it
was to be sold. 'Not for gold and silver.' said she, 'but for flesh and
blood.' The princess asked what she meant, and she said, 'Let me speak
with the bridegroom this night in his chamber, and I will give thee the
dress.' At last the princess agreed, but she told her chamberlain to
give the prince a sleeping draught, that he might not hear or see her.
When evening came, and the prince had fallen asleep, she was led into
his chamber, and she sat herself down at his feet, and said: 'I have
followed thee seven years. I have been to the sun, the moon, and the
night-wind, to seek thee, and at last I have helped thee to overcome the
dragon. Wilt thou then forget me quite?' But the prince all the time
slept so soundly, that her voice only passed over him, and seemed like
the whistling of the wind among the fir-trees.
Then poor Lily was led away, and forced to give up
the golden dress; and when she saw that there was no help for her, she
went out into a meadow, and sat herself down and wept. But as she sat
she bethought herself of the egg that the moon had given her; and when
she broke it, there ran out a hen and twelve chickens of pure gold, that
played about, and then nestled under the old one's wings, so as to form
the most beautiful sight in the world. And she rose up and drove them
before her, till the bride saw them from her window, and was so pleased
that she came forth and asked her if she would sell the brood. 'Not for
gold or silver, but for flesh and blood: let me again this evening speak
with the bridegroom in his chamber, and I will give thee the whole
brood.'
Then the princess thought to betray her as before,
and agreed to what she asked: but when the prince went to his chamber he
asked the chamberlain why the wind had whistled so in the night. And the
chamberlain told him all--how he had given him a sleeping draught, and
how a poor maiden had come and spoken to him in his chamber, and was to
come again that night. Then the prince took care to throw away the
sleeping draught; and when Lily came and began again to tell him what
woes had befallen her, and how faithful and true to him she had been, he
knew his beloved wife's voice, and sprang up, and said, 'You have
awakened me as from a dream, for the strange princess had thrown a spell
around me, so that I had altogether forgotten you; but Heaven hath sent
you to me in a lucky hour.'
And they stole away out of the palace by night
unawares, and seated themselves on the griffin, who flew back with them
over the Red Sea. When they were half-way across Lily let the nut fall
into the water, and immediately a large nut-tree arose from the sea,
whereon the griffin rested for a while, and then carried them safely
home. There they found their child, now grown up to be comely and fair;
and after all their troubles they lived happily together to the end of
their days.
THE FOX AND THE HORSE
A farmer had a horse that had been an excellent
faithful servant to him: but he was now grown too old to work; so the
farmer would give him nothing more to eat, and said, 'I want you no
longer, so take yourself off out of my stable; I shall not take you back
again until you are stronger than a lion.' Then he opened the door and
turned him adrift.
The poor horse was very melancholy, and wandered
up and down in the wood, seeking some little shelter from the cold wind
and rain. Presently a fox met him: 'What's the matter, my friend?' said
he, 'why do you hang down your head and look so lonely and woe-begone?'
'Ah!' replied the horse, 'justice and avarice never dwell in one house;
my master has forgotten all that I have done for him so many years, and
because I can no longer work he has turned me adrift, and says unless I
become stronger than a lion he will not take me back again; what chance
can I have of that? he knows I have none, or he would not talk so.'
However, the fox bid him be of good cheer, and
said, 'I will help you; lie down there, stretch yourself out quite
stiff, and pretend to be dead.' The horse did as he was told, and the
fox went straight to the lion who lived in a cave close by, and said to
him, 'A little way off lies a dead horse; come with me and you may make
an excellent meal of his carcase.' The lion was greatly pleased, and set
off immediately; and when they came to the horse, the fox said, 'You
will not be able to eat him comfortably here; I'll tell you what--I will
tie you fast to his tail, and then you can draw him to your den, and eat
him at your leisure.'
This advice pleased the lion, so he laid himself
down quietly for the fox to make him fast to the horse. But the fox
managed to tie his legs together and bound all so hard and fast that
with all his strength he could not set himself free. When the work was
done, the fox clapped the horse on the shoulder, and said, 'Jip! Dobbin!
Jip!' Then up he sprang, and moved off, dragging the lion behind him.
The beast began to roar and bellow, till all the birds of the wood flew
away for fright; but the horse let him sing on, and made his way quietly
over the fields to his master's house.
'Here he is, master,' said he, 'I have got the
better of him': and when the farmer saw his old servant, his heart
relented, and he said. 'Thou shalt stay in thy stable and be well taken
care of.' And so the poor old horse had plenty to eat, and lived--till
he died.
THE BLUE LIGHT
There was once upon a time a soldier who for many
years had served the king faithfully, but when the war came to an end
could serve no longer because of the many wounds which he had received.
The king said to him: 'You may return to your home, I need you no
longer, and you will not receive any more money, for he only receives
wages who renders me service for them.' Then the soldier did not know
how to earn a living, went away greatly troubled, and walked the whole
day, until in the evening he entered a forest. When darkness came on, he
saw a light, which he went up to, and came to a house wherein lived a
witch. 'Do give me one night's lodging, and a little to eat and drink,'
said he to her, 'or I shall starve.' 'Oho!' she answered, 'who gives
anything to a run-away soldier? Yet will I be compassionate, and take
you in, if you will do what I wish.' 'What do you wish?' said the
soldier. 'That you should dig all round my garden for me, tomorrow.' The
soldier consented, and next day laboured with all his strength, but
could not finish it by the evening. 'I see well enough,' said the witch,
'that you can do no more today, but I will keep you yet another night,
in payment for which you must tomorrow chop me a load of wood, and chop
it small.' The soldier spent the whole day in doing it, and in the
evening the witch proposed that he should stay one night more.
'Tomorrow, you shall only do me a very trifling piece of work. Behind my
house, there is an old dry well, into which my light has fallen, it
burns blue, and never goes out, and you shall bring it up again.' Next
day the old woman took him to the well, and let him down in a basket. He
found the blue light, and made her a signal to draw him up again. She
did draw him up, but when he came near the edge, she stretched down her
hand and wanted to take the blue light away from him. 'No,' said he,
perceiving her evil intention, 'I will not give you the light until I am
standing with both feet upon the ground.' The witch fell into a passion,
let him fall again into the well, and went away.
The poor soldier fell without injury on the moist
ground, and the blue light went on burning, but of what use was that to
him? He saw very well that he could not escape death. He sat for a while
very sorrowfully, then suddenly he felt in his pocket and found his
tobacco pipe, which was still half full. 'This shall be my last
pleasure,' thought he, pulled it out, lit it at the blue light and began
to smoke. When the smoke had circled about the cavern, suddenly a little
black dwarf stood before him, and said: 'Lord, what are your commands?'
'What my commands are?' replied the soldier, quite astonished. 'I must
do everything you bid me,' said the little man. 'Good,' said the
soldier; 'then in the first place help me out of this well.' The little
man took him by the hand, and led him through an underground passage,
but he did not forget to take the blue light with him. On the way the
dwarf showed him the treasures which the witch had collected and hidden
there, and the soldier took as much gold as he could carry. When he was
above, he said to the little man: 'Now go and bind the old witch, and
carry her before the judge.' In a short time she came by like the wind,
riding on a wild tom-cat and screaming frightfully. Nor was it long
before the little man reappeared. 'It is all done,' said he, 'and the
witch is already hanging on the gallows. What further commands has my
lord?' inquired the dwarf. 'At this moment, none,' answered the soldier;
'you can return home, only be at hand immediately, if I summon you.'
'Nothing more is needed than that you should light your pipe at the blue
light, and I will appear before you at once.' Thereupon he vanished from
his sight.
The soldier returned to the town from which he
come. He went to the best inn, ordered himself handsome clothes, and
then bade the landlord furnish him a room as handsome as possible. When
it was ready and the soldier had taken possession of it, he summoned the
little black manikin and said: 'I have served the king faithfully, but
he has dismissed me, and left me to hunger, and now I want to take my
revenge.' 'What am I to do?' asked the little man. 'Late at night, when
the king's daughter is in bed, bring her here in her sleep, she shall do
servant's work for me.' The manikin said: 'That is an easy thing for me
to do, but a very dangerous thing for you, for if it is discovered, you
will fare ill.' When twelve o'clock had struck, the door sprang open,
and the manikin carried in the princess. 'Aha! are you there?' cried the
soldier, 'get to your work at once! Fetch the broom and sweep the
chamber.' When she had done this, he ordered her to come to his chair,
and then he stretched out his feet and said: 'Pull off my boots,' and
then he threw them in her face, and made her pick them up again, and
clean and brighten them. She, however, did everything he bade her,
without opposition, silently and with half- shut eyes. When the first
cock crowed, the manikin carried her back to the royal palace, and laid
her in her bed.
Next morning when the princess arose she went to
her father, and told him that she had had a very strange dream. 'I was
carried through the streets with the rapidity of lightning,' said she,
'and taken into a soldier's room, and I had to wait upon him like a
servant, sweep his room, clean his boots, and do all kinds of menial
work. It was only a dream, and yet I am just as tired as if I really had
done everything.' 'The dream may have been true,' said the king. 'I will
give you a piece of advice. Fill your pocket full of peas, and make a
small hole in the pocket, and then if you are carried away again, they
will fall out and leave a track in the streets.' But unseen by the king,
the manikin was standing beside him when he said that, and heard all. At
night when the sleeping princess was again carried through the streets,
some peas certainly did fall out of her pocket, but they made no track,
for the crafty manikin had just before scattered peas in every street
there was. And again the princess was compelled to do servant's work
until cock-crow.
Next morning the king sent his people out to seek
the track, but it was all in vain, for in every street poor children
were sitting, picking up peas, and saying: 'It must have rained peas,
last night.' 'We must think of something else,' said the king; 'keep
your shoes on when you go to bed, and before you come back from the
place where you are taken, hide one of them there, I will soon contrive
to find it.' The black manikin heard this plot, and at night when the
soldier again ordered him to bring the princess, revealed it to him, and
told him that he knew of no expedient to counteract this stratagem, and
that if the shoe were found in the soldier's house it would go badly
with him. 'Do what I bid you,' replied the soldier, and again this third
night the princess was obliged to work like a servant, but before she
went away, she hid her shoe under the bed.
Next morning the king had the entire town searched
for his daughter's shoe. It was found at the soldier's, and the soldier
himself, who at the entreaty of the dwarf had gone outside the gate, was
soon brought back, and thrown into prison. In his flight he had
forgotten the most valuable things he had, the blue light and the gold,
and had only one ducat in his pocket. And now loaded with chains, he was
standing at the window of his dungeon, when he chanced to see one of his
comrades passing by. The soldier tapped at the pane of glass, and when
this man came up, said to him: 'Be so kind as to fetch me the small
bundle I have left lying in the inn, and I will give you a ducat for
doing it.' His comrade ran thither and brought him what he wanted. As
soon as the soldier was alone again, he lighted his pipe and summoned
the black manikin. 'Have no fear,' said the latter to his master. 'Go
wheresoever they take you, and let them do what they will, only take the
blue light with you.' Next day the soldier was tried, and though he had
done nothing wicked, the judge condemned him to death. When he was led
forth to die, he begged a last favour of the king. 'What is it?' asked
the king. 'That I may smoke one more pipe on my way.' 'You may smoke
three,' answered the king, 'but do not imagine that I will spare your
life.' Then the soldier pulled out his pipe and lighted it at the blue
light, and as soon as a few wreaths of smoke had ascended, the manikin
was there with a small cudgel in his hand, and said: 'What does my lord
command?' 'Strike down to earth that false judge there, and his
constable, and spare not the king who has treated me so ill.' Then the
manikin fell on them like lightning, darting this way and that way, and
whosoever was so much as touched by his cudgel fell to earth, and did
not venture to stir again. The king was terrified; he threw himself on
the soldier's mercy, and merely to be allowed to live at all, gave him
his kingdom for his own, and his daughter to wife.
THE RAVEN
There was once a queen who had a little daughter,
still too young to run alone. One day the child was very troublesome,
and the mother could not quiet it, do what she would. She grew
impatient, and seeing the ravens flying round the castle, she opened the
window, and said: 'I wish you were a raven and would fly away, then I
should have a little peace.' Scarcely were the words out of her mouth,
when the child in her arms was turned into a raven, and flew away from
her through the open window. The bird took its flight to a dark wood and
remained there for a long time, and meanwhile the parents could hear
nothing of their child.
Long after this, a man was making his way through
the wood when he heard a raven calling, and he followed the sound of the
voice. As he drew near, the raven said, 'I am by birth a king's
daughter, but am now under the spell of some enchantment; you can,
however, set me free.' 'What am I to do?' he asked. She replied, 'Go
farther into the wood until you come to a house, wherein lives an old
woman; she will offer you food and drink, but you must not take of
either; if you do, you will fall into a deep sleep, and will not be able
to help me. In the garden behind the house is a large tan-heap, and on
that you must stand and watch for me. I shall drive there in my carriage
at two o'clock in the afternoon for three successive days; the first day
it will be drawn by four white, the second by four chestnut, and the
last by four black horses; but if you fail to keep awake and I find you
sleeping, I shall not be set free.'
The man promised to do all that she wished, but
the raven said, 'Alas! I know even now that you will take something from
the woman and be unable to save me.' The man assured her again that he
would on no account touch a thing to eat or drink.
When he came to the house and went inside, the old
woman met him, and said, 'Poor man! how tired you are! Come in and rest
and let me give you something to eat and drink.'
'No,' answered the man, 'I will neither eat not
drink.'
But she would not leave him alone, and urged him
saying, 'If you will not eat anything, at least you might take a draught
of wine; one drink counts for nothing,' and at last he allowed himself
to be persuaded, and drank.
As it drew towards the appointed hour, he went
outside into the garden and mounted the tan-heap to await the raven.
Suddenly a feeling of fatigue came over him, and unable to resist it, he
lay down for a little while, fully determined, however, to keep awake;
but in another minute his eyes closed of their own accord, and he fell
into such a deep sleep, that all the noises in the world would not have
awakened him. At two o'clock the raven came driving along, drawn by her
four white horses; but even before she reached the spot, she said to
herself, sighing, 'I know he has fallen asleep.' When she entered the
garden, there she found him as she had feared, lying on the tan-heap,
fast asleep. She got out of her carriage and went to him; she called him
and shook him, but it was all in vain, he still continued sleeping.
The next day at noon, the old woman came to him
again with food and drink which he at first refused. At last, overcome
by her persistent entreaties that he would take something, he lifted the
glass and drank again.
Towards two o'clock he went into the garden and on
to the tan-heap to watch for the raven. He had not been there long
before he began to feel so tired that his limbs seemed hardly able to
support him, and he could not stand upright any longer; so again he lay
down and fell fast asleep. As the raven drove along her four chestnut
horses, she said sorrowfully to herself, 'I know he has fallen asleep.'
She went as before to look for him, but he slept, and it was impossible
to awaken him.
The following day the old woman said to him, 'What
is this? You are not eating or drinking anything, do you want to kill
yourself?'
He answered, 'I may not and will not either eat or
drink.'
But she put down the dish of food and the glass of
wine in front of him, and when he smelt the wine, he was unable to
resist the temptation, and took a deep draught.
When the hour came round again he went as usual on
to the tan-heap in the garden to await the king's daughter, but he felt
even more overcome with weariness than on the two previous days, and
throwing himself down, he slept like a log. At two o'clock the raven
could be seen approaching, and this time her coachman and everything
about her, as well as her horses, were black.
She was sadder than ever as she drove along, and
said mournfully, 'I know he has fallen asleep, and will not be able to
set me free.' She found him sleeping heavily, and all her efforts to
awaken him were of no avail. Then she placed beside him a loaf, and some
meat, and a flask of wine, of such a kind, that however much he took of
them, they would never grow less. After that she drew a gold ring, on
which her name was engraved, off her finger, and put it upon one of his.
Finally, she laid a letter near him, in which, after giving him
particulars of the food and drink she had left for him, she finished
with the following words: 'I see that as long as you remain here you
will never be able to set me free; if, however, you still wish to do so,
come to the golden castle of Stromberg; this is well within your power
to accomplish.' She then returned to her carriage and drove to the
golden castle of Stromberg.
When the man awoke and found that he had been
sleeping, he was grieved at heart, and said, 'She has no doubt been here
and driven away again, and it is now too late for me to save her.' Then
his eyes fell on the things which were lying beside him; he read the
letter, and knew from it all that had happened. He rose up without
delay, eager to start on his way and to reach the castle of Stromberg,
but he had no idea in which direction he ought to go. He travelled about
a long time in search of it and came at last to a dark forest, through
which he went on walking for fourteen days and still could not find a
way out. Once more the night came on, and worn out he lay down under a
bush and fell asleep. Again the next day he pursued his way through the
forest, and that evening, thinking to rest again, he lay down as before,
but he heard such a howling and wailing that he found it impossible to
sleep. He waited till it was darker and people had begun to light up
their houses, and then seeing a little glimmer ahead of him, he went
towards it.
He found that the light came from a house which
looked smaller than it really was, from the contrast of its height with
that of an immense giant who stood in front of it. He thought to
himself, 'If the giant sees me going in, my life will not be worth
much.' However, after a while he summoned up courage and went forward.
When the giant saw him, he called out, 'It is lucky for that you have
come, for I have not had anything to eat for a long time. I can have you
now for my supper.' 'I would rather you let that alone,' said the man,
'for I do not willingly give myself up to be eaten; if you are wanting
food I have enough to satisfy your hunger.' 'If that is so,' replied the
giant, 'I will leave you in peace; I only thought of eating you because
I had nothing else.'
So they went indoors together and sat down, and
the man brought out the bread, meat, and wine, which although he had
eaten and drunk of them, were still unconsumed. The giant was pleased
with the good cheer, and ate and drank to his heart's content. When he
had finished his supper the man asked him if he could direct him to the
castle of Stromberg. The giant said, 'I will look on my map; on it are
marked all the towns, villages, and houses.' So he fetched his map, and
looked for the castle, but could not find it. 'Never mind,' he said, 'I
have larger maps upstairs in the cupboard, we will look on those,' but
they searched in vain, for the castle was not marked even on these. The
man now thought he should like to continue his journey, but the giant
begged him to remain for a day or two longer until the return of his
brother, who was away in search of provisions. When the brother came
home, they asked him about the castle of Stromberg, and he told them he
would look on his own maps as soon as he had eaten and appeased his
hunger. Accordingly, when he had finished his supper, they all went up
together to his room and looked through his maps, but the castle was not
to be found. Then he fetched other older maps, and they went on looking
for the castle until at last they found it, but it was many thousand
miles away. 'How shall I be able to get there?' asked the man. 'I have
two hours to spare,' said the giant, 'and I will carry you into the
neighbourhood of the castle; I must then return to look after the child
who is in our care.'
The giant, thereupon, carried the man to within
about a hundred leagues of the castle, where he left him, saying, 'You
will be able to walk the remainder of the way yourself.' The man
journeyed on day and night till he reached the golden castle of
Stromberg. He found it situated, however, on a glass mountain, and
looking up from the foot he saw the enchanted maiden drive round her
castle and then go inside. He was overjoyed to see her, and longed to
get to the top of the mountain, but the sides were so slippery that
every time he attempted to climb he fell back again. When he saw that it
was impossible to reach her, he was greatly grieved, and said to
himself, 'I will remain here and wait for her,' so he built himself a
little hut, and there he sat and watched for a whole year, and every day
he saw the king's daughter driving round her castle, but still was
unable to get nearer to her.
Looking out from his hut one day he saw three
robbers fighting and he called out to them, 'God be with you.' They
stopped when they heard the call, but looking round and seeing nobody,
they went on again with their fighting, which now became more furious.
'God be with you,' he cried again, and again they paused and looked
about, but seeing no one went back to their fighting. A third time he
called out, 'God be with you,' and then thinking he should like to know
the cause of dispute between the three men, he went out and asked them
why they were fighting so angrily with one another. One of them said
that he had found a stick, and that he had but to strike it against any
door through which he wished to pass, and it immediately flew open.
Another told him that he had found a cloak which rendered its wearer
invisible; and the third had caught a horse which would carry its rider
over any obstacle, and even up the glass mountain. They had been unable
to decide whether they would keep together and have the things in
common, or whether they would separate. On hearing this, the man said,
'I will give you something in exchange for those three things; not
money, for that I have not got, but something that is of far more value.
I must first, however, prove whether all you have told me about your
three things is true.' The robbers, therefore, made him get on the
horse, and handed him the stick and the cloak, and when he had put this
round him he was no longer visible. Then he fell upon them with the
stick and beat them one after another, crying, 'There, you idle
vagabonds, you have got what you deserve; are you satisfied now!'
After this he rode up the glass mountain. When he
reached the gate of the castle, he found it closed, but he gave it a
blow with his stick, and it flew wide open at once and he passed
through. He mounted the steps and entered the room where the maiden was
sitting, with a golden goblet full of wine in front of her. She could
not see him for he still wore his cloak. He took the ring which she had
given him off his finger, and threw it into the goblet, so that it rang
as it touched the bottom. 'That is my own ring,' she exclaimed, 'and if
that is so the man must also be here who is coming to set me free.'
She sought for him about the castle, but could
find him nowhere. Meanwhile he had gone outside again and mounted his
horse and thrown off the cloak. When therefore she came to the castle
gate she saw him, and cried aloud for joy. Then he dismounted and took
her in his arms; and she kissed him, and said, 'Now you have indeed set
me free, and tomorrow we will celebrate our marriage.'
THE GOLDEN GOOSE
There was a man who had three sons, the youngest
of whom was called Dummling,[*] and was despised, mocked, and sneered at
on every occasion.
It happened that the eldest wanted to go into the
forest to hew wood, and before he went his mother gave him a beautiful
sweet cake and a bottle of wine in order that he might not suffer from
hunger or thirst.
When he entered the forest he met a little grey-haired
old man who bade him good day, and said: 'Do give me a piece of cake out
of your pocket, and let me have a draught of your wine; I am so hungry
and thirsty.' But the clever son answered: 'If I give you my cake and
wine, I shall have none for myself; be off with you,' and he left the
little man standing and went on.
But when he began to hew down a tree, it was not
long before he made a false stroke, and the axe cut him in the arm, so
that he had to go home and have it bound up. And this was the little
grey man's doing.
After this the second son went into the forest,
and his mother gave him, like the eldest, a cake and a bottle of wine.
The little old grey man met him likewise, and asked him for a piece of
cake and a drink of wine. But the second son, too, said sensibly enough:
'What I give you will be taken away from myself; be off!' and he left
the little man standing and went on. His punishment, however, was not
delayed; when he had made a few blows at the tree he struck himself in
the leg, so that he had to be carried home.
Then Dummling said: 'Father, do let me go and cut
wood.' The father answered: 'Your brothers have hurt themselves with it,
leave it alone, you do not understand anything about it.' But Dummling
begged so long that at last he said: 'Just go then, you will get wiser
by hurting yourself.' His mother gave him a cake made with water and
baked in the cinders, and with it a bottle of sour beer.
When he came to the forest the little old grey man
met him likewise, and greeting him, said: 'Give me a piece of your cake
and a drink out of your bottle; I am so hungry and thirsty.' Dummling
answered: 'I have only cinder-cake and sour beer; if that pleases you,
we will sit down and eat.' So they sat down, and when Dummling pulled
out his cinder-cake, it was a fine sweet cake, and the sour beer had
become good wine. So they ate and drank, and after that the little man
said: 'Since you have a good heart, and are willing to divide what you
have, I will give you good luck. There stands an old tree, cut it down,
and you will find something at the roots.' Then the little man took
leave of him.
Dummling went and cut down the tree, and when it
fell there was a goose sitting in the roots with feathers of pure gold.
He lifted her up, and taking her with him, went to an inn where he
thought he would stay the night. Now the host had three daughters, who
saw the goose and were curious to know what such a wonderful bird might
be, and would have liked to have one of its golden feathers.
The eldest thought: 'I shall soon find an
opportunity of pulling out a feather,' and as soon as Dummling had gone
out she seized the goose by the wing, but her finger and hand remained
sticking fast to it.
The second came soon afterwards, thinking only of
how she might get a feather for herself, but she had scarcely touched
her sister than she was held fast.
At last the third also came with the like intent,
and the others screamed out: 'Keep away; for goodness' sake keep away!'
But she did not understand why she was to keep away. 'The others are
there,' she thought, 'I may as well be there too,' and ran to them; but
as soon as she had touched her sister, she remained sticking fast to
her. So they had to spend the night with the goose.
The next morning Dummling took the goose under his
arm and set out, without troubling himself about the three girls who
were hanging on to it. They were obliged to run after him continually,
now left, now right, wherever his legs took him.
In the middle of the fields the parson met them,
and when he saw the procession he said: 'For shame, you good-for-nothing
girls, why are you running across the fields after this young man? Is
that seemly?' At the same time he seized the youngest by the hand in
order to pull her away, but as soon as he touched her he likewise stuck
fast, and was himself obliged to run behind.
Before long the sexton came by and saw his master,
the parson, running behind three girls. He was astonished at this and
called out: 'Hi! your reverence, whither away so quickly? Do not forget
that we have a christening today!' and running after him he took him by
the sleeve, but was also held fast to it.
Whilst the five were trotting thus one behind the
other, two labourers came with their hoes from the fields; the parson
called out to them and begged that they would set him and the sexton
free. But they had scarcely touched the sexton when they were held fast,
and now there were seven of them running behind Dummling and the goose.
Soon afterwards he came to a city, where a king
ruled who had a daughter who was so serious that no one could make her
laugh. So he had put forth a decree that whosoever should be able to
make her laugh should marry her. When Dummling heard this, he went with
his goose and all her train before the king's daughter, and as soon as
she saw the seven people running on and on, one behind the other, she
began to laugh quite loudly, and as if she would never stop. Thereupon
Dummling asked to have her for his wife; but the king did not like the
son-in- law, and made all manner of excuses and said he must first
produce a man who could drink a cellarful of wine. Dummling thought of
the little grey man, who could certainly help him; so he went into the
forest, and in the same place where he had felled the tree, he saw a man
sitting, who had a very sorrowful face. Dummling asked him what he was
taking to heart so sorely, and he answered: 'I have such a great thirst
and cannot quench it; cold water I cannot stand, a barrel of wine I have
just emptied, but that to me is like a drop on a hot stone!'
'There, I can help you,' said Dummling, 'just come
with me and you shall be satisfied.'
He led him into the king's cellar, and the man
bent over the huge barrels, and drank and drank till his loins hurt, and
before the day was out he had emptied all the barrels. Then Dummling
asked once more for his bride, but the king was vexed that such an ugly
fellow, whom everyone called Dummling, should take away his daughter,
and he made a new condition; he must first find a man who could eat a
whole mountain of bread. Dummling did not think long, but went straight
into the forest, where in the same place there sat a man who was tying
up his body with a strap, and making an awful face, and saying: 'I have
eaten a whole ovenful of rolls, but what good is that when one has such
a hunger as I? My stomach remains empty, and I must tie myself up if I
am not to die of hunger.'
At this Dummling was glad, and said: 'Get up and
come with me; you shall eat yourself full.' He led him to the king's
palace where all the flour in the whole Kingdom was collected, and from
it he caused a huge mountain of bread to be baked. The man from the
forest stood before it, began to eat, and by the end of one day the
whole mountain had vanished. Then Dummling for the third time asked for
his bride; but the king again sought a way out, and ordered a ship which
could sail on land and on water. 'As soon as you come sailing back in
it,' said he, 'you shall have my daughter for wife.'
Dummling went straight into the forest, and there
sat the little grey man to whom he had given his cake. When he heard
what Dummling wanted, he said: 'Since you have given me to eat and to
drink, I will give you the ship; and I do all this because you once were
kind to me.' Then he gave him the ship which could sail on land and
water, and when the king saw that, he could no longer prevent him from
having his daughter. The wedding was celebrated, and after the king's
death, Dummling inherited his kingdom and lived for a long time
contentedly with his wife.
[*] Simpleton
THE WATER OF LIFE
Long before you or I were born, there reigned, in
a country a great way off, a king who had three sons. This king once
fell very ill--so ill that nobody thought he could live. His sons were
very much grieved at their father's sickness; and as they were walking
together very mournfully in the garden of the palace, a little old man
met them and asked what was the matter. They told him that their father
was very ill, and that they were afraid nothing could save him. 'I know
what would,' said the little old man; 'it is the Water of Life. If he
could have a draught of it he would be well again; but it is very hard
to get.' Then the eldest son said, 'I will soon find it': and he went to
the sick king, and begged that he might go in search of the Water of
Life, as it was the only thing that could save him. 'No,' said the king.
'I had rather die than place you in such great danger as you must meet
with in your journey.' But he begged so hard that the king let him go;
and the prince thought to himself, 'If I bring my father this water, he
will make me sole heir to his kingdom.'
Then he set out: and when he had gone on his way
some time he came to a deep valley, overhung with rocks and woods; and
as he looked around, he saw standing above him on one of the rocks a
little ugly dwarf, with a sugarloaf cap and a scarlet cloak; and the
dwarf called to him and said, 'Prince, whither so fast?' 'What is that
to thee, you ugly imp?' said the prince haughtily, and rode on.
But the dwarf was enraged at his behaviour, and
laid a fairy spell of ill-luck upon him; so that as he rode on the
mountain pass became narrower and narrower, and at last the way was so
straitened that he could not go to step forward: and when he thought to
have turned his horse round and go back the way he came, he heard a loud
laugh ringing round him, and found that the path was closed behind him,
so that he was shut in all round. He next tried to get off his horse and
make his way on foot, but again the laugh rang in his ears, and he found
himself unable to move a step, and thus he was forced to abide
spellbound.
Meantime the old king was lingering on in daily
hope of his son's return, till at last the second son said, 'Father, I
will go in search of the Water of Life.' For he thought to himself, 'My
brother is surely dead, and the kingdom will fall to me if I find the
water.' The king was at first very unwilling to let him go, but at last
yielded to his wish. So he set out and followed the same road which his
brother had done, and met with the same elf, who stopped him at the same
spot in the mountains, saying, as before, 'Prince, prince, whither so
fast?' 'Mind your own affairs, busybody!' said the prince scornfully,
and rode on.
But the dwarf put the same spell upon him as he
put on his elder brother, and he, too, was at last obliged to take up
his abode in the heart of the mountains. Thus it is with proud silly
people, who think themselves above everyone else, and are too proud to
ask or take advice.
When the second prince had thus been gone a long
time, the youngest son said he would go and search for the Water of
Life, and trusted he should soon be able to make his father well again.
So he set out, and the dwarf met him too at the same spot in the valley,
among the mountains, and said, 'Prince, whither so fast?' And the prince
said, 'I am going in search of the Water of Life, because my father is
ill, and like to die: can you help me? Pray be kind, and aid me if you
can!' 'Do you know where it is to be found?' asked the dwarf. 'No,' said
the prince, 'I do not. Pray tell me if you know.' 'Then as you have
spoken to me kindly, and are wise enough to seek for advice, I will tell
you how and where to go. The water you seek springs from a well in an
enchanted castle; and, that you may be able to reach it in safety, I
will give you an iron wand and two little loaves of bread; strike the
iron door of the castle three times with the wand, and it will open: two
hungry lions will be lying down inside gaping for their prey, but if you
throw them the bread they will let you pass; then hasten on to the well,
and take some of the Water of Life before the clock strikes twelve; for
if you tarry longer the door will shut upon you for ever.'
Then the prince thanked his little friend with the
scarlet cloak for his friendly aid, and took the wand and the bread, and
went travelling on and on, over sea and over land, till he came to his
journey's end, and found everything to be as the dwarf had told him. The
door flew open at the third stroke of the wand, and when the lions were
quieted he went on through the castle and came at length to a beautiful
hall. Around it he saw several knights sitting in a trance; then he
pulled off their rings and put them on his own fingers. In another room
he saw on a table a sword and a loaf of bread, which he also took.
Further on he came to a room where a beautiful young lady sat upon a
couch; and she welcomed him joyfully, and said, if he would set her free
from the spell that bound her, the kingdom should be his, if he would
come back in a year and marry her. Then she told him that the well that
held the Water of Life was in the palace gardens; and bade him make
haste, and draw what he wanted before the clock struck twelve.
He walked on; and as he walked through beautiful
gardens he came to a delightful shady spot in which stood a couch; and
he thought to himself, as he felt tired, that he would rest himself for
a while, and gaze on the lovely scenes around him. So he laid himself
down, and sleep fell upon him unawares, so that he did not wake up till
the clock was striking a quarter to twelve. Then he sprang from the
couch dreadfully frightened, ran to the well, filled a cup that was
standing by him full of water, and hastened to get away in time. Just as
he was going out of the iron door it struck twelve, and the door fell so
quickly upon him that it snapped off a piece of his heel.
When he found himself safe, he was overjoyed to
think that he had got the Water of Life; and as he was going on his way
homewards, he passed by the little dwarf, who, when he saw the sword and
the loaf, said, 'You have made a noble prize; with the sword you can at
a blow slay whole armies, and the bread will never fail you.' Then the
prince thought to himself, 'I cannot go home to my father without my
brothers'; so he said, 'My dear friend, cannot you tell me where my two
brothers are, who set out in search of the Water of Life before me, and
never came back?' 'I have shut them up by a charm between two
mountains,' said the dwarf, 'because they were proud and ill-behaved,
and scorned to ask advice.' The prince begged so hard for his brothers,
that the dwarf at last set them free, though unwillingly, saying,
'Beware of them, for they have bad hearts.' Their brother, however, was
greatly rejoiced to see them, and told them all that had happened to
him; how he had found the Water of Life, and had taken a cup full of it;
and how he had set a beautiful princess free from a spell that bound
her; and how she had engaged to wait a whole year, and then to marry
him, and to give him the kingdom.
Then they all three rode on together, and on their
way home came to a country that was laid waste by war and a dreadful
famine, so that it was feared all must die for want. But the prince gave
the king of the land the bread, and all his kingdom ate of it. And he
lent the king the wonderful sword, and he slew the enemy's army with it;
and thus the kingdom was once more in peace and plenty. In the same
manner he befriended two other countries through which they passed on
their way.
When they came to the sea, they got into a ship
and during their voyage the two eldest said to themselves, 'Our brother
has got the water which we could not find, therefore our father will
forsake us and give him the kingdom, which is our right'; so they were
full of envy and revenge, and agreed together how they could ruin him.
Then they waited till he was fast asleep, and poured the Water of Life
out of the cup, and took it for themselves, giving him bitter sea-water
instead.
When they came to their journey's end, the
youngest son brought his cup to the sick king, that he might drink and
be healed. Scarcely, however, had he tasted the bitter sea-water when he
became worse even than he was before; and then both the elder sons came
in, and blamed the youngest for what they had done; and said that he
wanted to poison their father, but that they had found the Water of
Life, and had brought it with them. He no sooner began to drink of what
they brought him, than he felt his sickness leave him, and was as strong
and well as in his younger days. Then they went to their brother, and
laughed at him, and said, 'Well, brother, you found the Water of Life,
did you? You have had the trouble and we shall have the reward. Pray,
with all your cleverness, why did not you manage to keep your eyes open?
Next year one of us will take away your beautiful princess, if you do
not take care. You had better say nothing about this to our father, for
he does not believe a word you say; and if you tell tales, you shall
lose your life into the bargain: but be quiet, and we will let you off.'
The old king was still very angry with his
youngest son, and thought that he really meant to have taken away his
life; so he called his court together, and asked what should be done,
and all agreed that he ought to be put to death. The prince knew nothing
of what was going on, till one day, when the king's chief huntsmen went
a-hunting with him, and they were alone in the wood together, the
huntsman looked so sorrowful that the prince said, 'My friend, what is
the matter with you?' 'I cannot and dare not tell you,' said he. But the
prince begged very hard, and said, 'Only tell me what it is, and do not
think I shall be angry, for I will forgive you.' 'Alas!' said the
huntsman; 'the king has ordered me to shoot you.' The prince started at
this, and said, 'Let me live, and I will change dresses with you; you
shall take my royal coat to show to my father, and do you give me your
shabby one.' 'With all my heart,' said the huntsman; 'I am sure I shall
be glad to save you, for I could not have shot you.' Then he took the
prince's coat, and gave him the shabby one, and went away through the
wood.
Some time after, three grand embassies came to the
old king's court, with rich gifts of gold and precious stones for his
youngest son; now all these were sent from the three kings to whom he
had lent his sword and loaf of bread, in order to rid them of their
enemy and feed their people. This touched the old king's heart, and he
thought his son might still be guiltless, and said to his court, 'O that
my son were still alive! how it grieves me that I had him killed!' 'He
is still alive,' said the huntsman; 'and I am glad that I had pity on
him, but let him go in peace, and brought home his royal coat.' At this
the king was overwhelmed with joy, and made it known thoughout all his
kingdom, that if his son would come back to his court he would forgive
him.
Meanwhile the princess was eagerly waiting till
her deliverer should come back; and had a road made leading up to her
palace all of shining gold; and told her courtiers that whoever came on
horseback, and rode straight up to the gate upon it, was her true lover;
and that they must let him in: but whoever rode on one side of it, they
must be sure was not the right one; and that they must send him away at
once.
The time soon came, when the eldest brother
thought that he would make haste to go to the princess, and say that he
was the one who had set her free, and that he should have her for his
wife, and the kingdom with her. As he came before the palace and saw the
golden road, he stopped to look at it, and he thought to himself, 'It is
a pity to ride upon this beautiful road'; so he turned aside and rode on
the right-hand side of it. But when he came to the gate, the guards, who
had seen the road he took, said to him, he could not be what he said he
was, and must go about his business.
The second prince set out soon afterwards on the
same errand; and when he came to the golden road, and his horse had set
one foot upon it, he stopped to look at it, and thought it very
beautiful, and said to himself, 'What a pity it is that anything should
tread here!' Then he too turned aside and rode on the left side of it.
But when he came to the gate the guards said he was not the true prince,
and that he too must go away about his business; and away he went.
Now when the full year was come round, the third
brother left the forest in which he had lain hid for fear of his
father's anger, and set out in search of his betrothed bride. So he
journeyed on, thinking of her all the way, and rode so quickly that he
did not even see what the road was made of, but went with his horse
straight over it; and as he came to the gate it flew open, and the
princess welcomed him with joy, and said he was her deliverer, and
should now be her husband and lord of the kingdom. When the first joy at
their meeting was over, the princess told him she had heard of his
father having forgiven him, and of his wish to have him home again: so,
before his wedding with the princess, he went to visit his father,
taking her with him. Then he told him everything; how his brothers had
cheated and robbed him, and yet that he had borne all those wrongs for
the love of his father. And the old king was very angry, and wanted to
punish his wicked sons; but they made their escape, and got into a ship
and sailed away over the wide sea, and where they went to nobody knew
and nobody cared.
And now the old king gathered together his court,
and asked all his kingdom to come and celebrate the wedding of his son
and the princess. And young and old, noble and squire, gentle and
simple, came at once on the summons; and among the rest came the
friendly dwarf, with the sugarloaf hat, and a new scarlet cloak.
And the wedding was held, and the merry bells run.
And all the good people they danced and they sung, And feasted and
frolick'd I can't tell how long.
THE TWELVE HUNTSMEN
There was once a king's son who had a bride whom
he loved very much. And when he was sitting beside her and very happy,
news came that his father lay sick unto death, and desired to see him
once again before his end. Then he said to his beloved: 'I must now go
and leave you, I give you a ring as a remembrance of me. When I am king,
I will return and fetch you.' So he rode away, and when he reached his
father, the latter was dangerously ill, and near his death. He said to
him: 'Dear son, I wished to see you once again before my end, promise me
to marry as I wish,' and he named a certain king's daughter who was to
be his wife. The son was in such trouble that he did not think what he
was doing, and said: 'Yes, dear father, your will shall be done,' and
thereupon the king shut his eyes, and died.
When therefore the son had been proclaimed king,
and the time of mourning was over, he was forced to keep the promise
which he had given his father, and caused the king's daughter to be
asked in marriage, and she was promised to him. His first betrothed
heard of this, and fretted so much about his faithfulness that she
nearly died. Then her father said to her: 'Dearest child, why are you so
sad? You shall have whatsoever you will.' She thought for a moment and
said: 'Dear father, I wish for eleven girls exactly like myself in face,
figure, and size.' The father said: 'If it be possible, your desire
shall be fulfilled,' and he caused a search to be made in his whole
|